Nicholas Sparks
The Choice
For the Lewis family: Bob, Debbie, Cody, and Cole. My family.
Acknowledgments
Okay, I ll be honest. It s sometimes hard for me to write acknowledgments for the
simple reason that my life as an author has been blessed with a kind of professi
onal stability that strikes me as somewhat rare in this day and age. When I thin
k back to my earlier novels and reread the acknowledgments in, say, Message in a
Bottle or The Rescue, I see names of people with whom I still work today. Not o
nly have I had the same literary agent and editor since I began writing, but I ve
worked with the same publicists, film agent, entertainment attorney, cover desig
ner, and salespeople, and one producer has been responsible for three of the fou
r film adaptations. While it s wonderful, it also makes me feel like something of
a broken record when it comes to thanking these people. Nonetheless, each and ev
ery one of them deserves my gratitude.
Of course, I have to begin-as always-with thanking Cat, my wife. We ve been marr
ied eighteen years and have shared quite a life together: five children, eight d
ogs (at various times), six different residences in three different states, thre
e very sad funerals of various members of my family, twelve novels and another n
onfiction work. It s been a whirlwind since the beginning, and I can t imagine exper
iencing any of it with anyone else.
My children-Miles, Ryan, Landon, Lexie, and Savannah-are growing up, slowly bu
t surely, and while I love them dearly, I m proud of each and every one of them.
Theresa Park, my agent at Park Literary Group, is not only one of my closest f
riends, but a fantastic one at that. Intelligent, charming, and kind, she s one of
the great blessings of my life, and I d like to thank her for everything she s done
.
Jamie Raab, my editor at Grand Central Publishing, also deserves my gratitude
for all she does. She puts the pencil to the manuscript in hopes of making it th
e best it can be, and I m fortunate to have had access to her intuitive wisdom whe
n it comes to novels. More than that, I m lucky to call her a friend.
Denise DiNovi, the fabulous producer of A Walk to Remember, Message in a Bottl
e, and Nights in Rodanthe, is my best friend in Hollywood, and I look forward to
those times on the film set, simply so we have a chance to visit.
David Young, the new CEO of Grand Central Publishing (well, not exactly new an
ymore, I suppose), has not only become a friend, but one who deserves my heartfe
lt thanks, if only because I have the nasty tendency to deliver my manuscripts a
t the very last possible moment. Sorry about that.
Both Jennifer Romanello and Edna Farley are publicists and friends, and I ve ado
red working with them since The Notebook was published in 1996. Thanks for all t
hat you do!
Harvey-Jane Kowal and Sona Vogel, who do the copy-editing, always deserve my t
hanks for catching the little errors that inevitably crop up in my novels.
Howie Sanders and Keya Khayatian at UTA deserve my thanks for the good fortune
I ve had in film adaptations. I appreciate all that both of you do.
Scott Schwimer always watches out for me, and I ve come to think of him as a fri
end. Thanks, Scott!
Many thanks to Marty Bowen, the producer responsible for Dear John. I can t wait
to see how it all turns out.
Thanks again to Flag for another wonderful cover.
And finally, many thanks to Shannon O Keefe, Abby Koons, Sharon Krassney, David
Park, Lynn Harris, and Mark Johnson.
Prologue
February 2007
Stories are as unique as the people who tell them, and the best stories are th
ose in which the ending is a surprise. At least, that s what Travis Parker recalle
d his dad telling him when he was a child. Travis remembered the way his dad wou
ld sit on the bed beside him, his mouth curling into a smile as Travis begged fo
r a story.
What kind of story do you want? his dad would ask.
The best one ever, Travis would answer.
Usually, his dad would sit quietly for a few moments, and then his eyes would
light up. He d put his arm around Travis and in a pitch-perfect voice would launch
into a story that often kept Travis awake long after his dad had turned out the
lights. There was always adventure and danger and excitement and journeys that
took place in and around the small coastal town of Beaufort, North Carolina, the
place Travis Parker grew up in and still called home. Strangely, most of them i
ncluded bears. Grizzly bears, brown bears, Kodiak bears . . . his dad wasn t a sti
ckler for reality when it came to a bear s natural habitat. He focused on hair-rai
sing chase scenes through the sandy lowlands, giving Travis nightmares about cra
zed polar bears on Shackleford Banks until he was well into middle school. Yet n
o matter how frightened the stories had made him, he would inevitably ask, What h
appened next?
To Travis, those days seemed like the innocent vestiges of another era. He was
forty-three now, and as he parked his car in the parking lot of Carteret Genera
l Hospital, where his wife had worked for the past ten years, he thought again a
bout the words he d always said to his father.
After stepping out of the car, he reached for the flowers he d brought. The last
time he and his wife had spoken, they d had an argument, and more than anything h
e wanted to take back his words and make amends. He was under no illusions that
the flowers would make things better between them, but he wasn t sure what else to
do. It went without saying that he felt guilty about what had happened, but mar
ried friends had assured him that guilt was the cornerstone of any good marriage
. It meant that a conscience was at work, values were held in high esteem, and r
easons to feel guilty were best avoided whenever possible. His friends sometimes
admitted their failures in this particular area, and Travis figured that the sa
me could be said about any couple he d ever met. He supposed his friends had said
it to make him feel better, to reassure him that no one was perfect, that he sho
uldn t be so hard on himself. Everyone makes mistakes, they d said, and though he d nodd
ed as if he believed them, he knew they would never understand what he was going
through. They couldn t. After all, their wives were still sleeping beside them ev
ery night; none of them had ever been separated for three months, none of them w
ondered whether their marriage would ever return to what it once had been.
As he crossed the parking lot, he thought about both of his daughters, his job
, his wife. At the moment, none of them gave him much comfort. He felt as though
he were failing in practically every area of his life. Lately, happiness seemed
as distant and unattainable to him as space travel. He hadn t always felt this wa
y. There had been a long period of time during which he remembered being very ha
ppy. But things change. People change. Change was one of the inevitable laws of
nature, exacting its toll on people s lives. Mistakes are made, regrets form, and
all that was left were repercussions that made something as simple as rising fro
m the bed seem almost laborious.
Shaking his head, he approached the door of the hospital, picturing himself as
the child he had been, listening to his father s stories. His own life had been t
he best story ever, he mused, the kind of story that should have ended on a happ
y note. As he reached for the door, he felt the familiar rush of memory and regr
et.
Only later, after he let the memories overtake him once again, would he allow
himself to wonder what would happen next.
Part One
One
May 1996
Tell me again why I agreed to help you with this. Matt, red-faced and grunting,
continued to push the spa toward the recently cut square at the far edge of the
deck. His feet slipped, and he could feel sweat pouring from his forehead into
the corners of his eyes, making them sting. It was hot, way too hot for early Ma
y. Too damn hot for this, that s for sure. Even Travis s dog, Moby, was hiding in th
e shade and panting, his tongue hanging out.
Travis Parker, who was pushing the massive box alongside him, managed to shrug
. Because you thought it would be fun, he said. He lowered his shoulder and shoved
; the spa-which must have weighed four hundred pounds-moved another couple of in
ches. At this rate, the spa should be in place, oh . . . sometime next week.
This is ridiculous, Matt said, heaving his weight into the box, thinking that wh
at they really needed was a team of mules. His back was killing him. For a momen
t, he visualized his ears blowing off the sides of his head from the strain, sho
oting in both directions like the bottle rockets he and Travis used to launch as
kids.
You ve already said that.
And it isn t fun, Matt grunted.
You said that, too.
And it isn t going to be easy to install.
Sure it is, Travis said. He stood and pointed to the lettering on the box. See? I
t says right here, Easy to Install.
From his spot beneath the shady tree, Moby-a pu
rebred boxer-barked as if in agreement, and Travis smiled, looking way too pleas
ed with himself.
Matt scowled, trying to catch his breath. He hated that look. Well, not always
. Most of the time he enjoyed his friend s boundless enthusiasm. But not today. De
finitely not today.
Matt reached for the bandanna in his rear pocket. It was soaked with sweat, wh
ich had of course done wonders for the seat of his pants. He wiped his face and
wrung the bandanna with a quick twist. Sweat dribbled from it like a leaky fauce
t onto the top of his shoe. He stared at it almost hypnotically, before feeling
it soak through the light mesh fabric, giving his toes a nice, slimy feel. Oh, t
hat was just dandy, wasn t it?
As I recall, you said Joe and Laird would be here to help us with your little pr
oject and that Megan and Allison would cook some burgers and we d have beer, and th
at-oh yeah, installing this thing should only take a couple of hours at the most
.
They re coming, Travis said.
You said that four hours ago.
They must be running a little late.
Maybe you never called them at all.
Of course I called them. And they re bringing the kids, too. I promise.
When?
Soon.
Uh-huh, Matt answered. He stuffed the bandanna back in his pocket. And by the way
-assuming they don t arrive soon, just how on earth do you think the two of us wil
l be able to lower this thing into place?
Travis dismissed the problem with a wave as he turned toward the box again. We ll
figure it out. Just think how well we ve done so far. We re almost halfway there.
Matt scowled again. It was Saturday-Saturday! His day of recreation and relaxa
tion, his chance to escape from the grindstone, the break he earned after five d
ays at the bank, the kind of day he needed. He was a loan officer, for God s sake!
He was supposed to push paper, not hot tubs! He could have been watching the Br
aves play the Dodgers! He could have been golfing! He could have gone to the bea
ch! He could have slept in with Liz before heading to her parents house like they
did almost every Saturday, instead of waking at the crack of dawn and performin
g manual labor for eight straight hours beneath a scalding southern sun. . . .
He paused. Who was he kidding? Had he not been here, he would have definitely
spent the day with Liz s parents, which was, in all honesty, the main reason he d ag
reed to Travis s request in the first place. But that wasn t the point. The point wa
s, he didn t need this. He really didn t.
I don t need this, he said. I really don t.
Travis didn t seem to hear him. His hands were already on the box, and he was ge
tting into position. You ready?
Matt lowered his shoulder, feeling bitter. His legs were shaking. Shaking! He
already knew he d be in serious, double-dose-of-Advil pain in the morning. Unlike
Travis, he didn t make it into the gym four days a week or play racquetball or go
running or go scuba diving in Aruba or surfing in Bali or skiing in Vail or anyt
hing else the guy did. This isn t fun, you know?
Travis winked. You said that already, remember?
Wow! Joe commented, lifting an eyebrow as he walked the perimeter of the hot tub
. By then, the sun was beginning its descent, streams of gold reflecting off the
bay. In the distance, a heron broke from the trees and gracefully skimmed the s
urface, dispersing the light. Joe and Megan, along with Laird and Allison, had a
rrived a few minutes before with kids in tow, and Travis was showing them around
. This looks great! You two did all of this today?
Travis nodded, holding his beer. It wasn t so bad, he said. I think Matt even enjoy
ed it.
Joe glanced at Matt, who lay flattened in a lawn chair off to the side of the
deck, a cold rag over his head. Even his belly-Matt had always been on the pudgy
side-seemed to sag.
I can see that.
Was it heavy?
Like an Egyptian sarcophagus! Matt croaked. One of those gold ones that only cran
es can move!
Joe laughed. Can the kids get in?
Not yet. I just filled it, and the water will take a little while to heat up. T
he sun will help, though.
The sun will heat it within minutes! Matt moaned. Within seconds!
Joe grinned. Laird and the three of them had gone to school together since kin
dergarten.
Tough day, Matt?
Matt removed the rag and scowled at Joe. You have no idea. And thanks for showi
ng up on time.
Travis said to be here at five. If I had known you needed help, I would have co
me earlier.
Matt slowly shifted his gaze to Travis. He really hated his friend sometimes.
How s Tina doing? Travis said, changing the subject. Is Megan getting any sleep?
Megan was chatting with Allison at the table on the far end of the deck, and J
oe glanced briefly in her direction. Some. Tina s cough is gone and she s been able t
o sleep through the night again, but sometimes I just think that Megan isn t wired
to sleep. At least, not since she became a mom. She gets up even if Tina hasn t m
ade a peep. It s like the quiet wakes her up.
She s a good mom, Travis said. She always has been.
Joe turned to Matt. Where s Liz? he asked.
She should be here any minute, Matt answered, his voice floating up as if from t
he dead. She spent the day with her parents.
Lovely, Joe commented.
Be nice. They re good people.
I seem to recall you saying that if you had to sit through one more of your fat
her-in-law s stories about his prostate cancer or listen to your mother-in-law fre
t about Henry getting fired again-even though it wasn t his fault-you were going t
o stick your head in the oven.
Matt struggled to sit up. I never said that!
Yes, you did. Joe winked as Matt s wife, Liz, rounded the corner of the house with
Ben toddling just in front of her. But don t worry. I won t say a word.
Matt s eyes darted nervously from Liz to Joe and back again, checking to see if
she d heard.
Hey, y all! Liz called out with a friendly wave, leading little Ben by the hand. S
he made a beeline for Megan and Allison. Ben broke away and toddled toward the o
ther kids in the yard.
Joe saw Matt sigh in relief. He grinned and lowered his voice. So . . . Matt s in
-laws. Is that how you conned him into coming here?
I might have mentioned it, Travis smirked.
Joe laughed.
What are you guys saying? Matt called out suspiciously.
Nothing, they said in unison.
Later, with the sun down and the food eaten, Moby curled up at Travis s feet. As
he listened to the sound of the kids splashing away in the spa, Travis felt a w
ave of satisfaction wash over him. This was his favorite kind of evening, whiled
away to the sound of shared laughter and familiar banter. One minute Allison wa
s talking to Joe; the next minute she was chatting with Liz and then Laird or Ma
tt; and so on for everyone seated around the outdoor table. No pretenses, no att
empts to impress, no one trying to show anyone up. His life, he sometimes though
t, resembled a beer commercial, and for the most part, he was content simply to
ride the current of good feeling.
Every now and then, one of the wives would get up to check on the kids. Laird,
Joe, and Matt, on the other hand, reserved their child-rearing duties at times
like these to periodically raising their voices in hopes of calming down the kid
s or preventing them from teasing or accidentally hurting one another. Sure, one
of the kids would throw a tantrum now and then, but most problems were solved w
ith a quick kiss on a scraped knee or a hug that was as tender to watch from a d
istance as it must have been for the kid to receive.
Travis looked around the table, pleased that his childhood friends not only ha
d become good husbands and fathers, but were still a part of his life. It didn t a
lways turn out that way. At thirty-two, he knew that life was sometimes a gamble
, and he d survived more than his share of accidents and falls, some of which shou
ld have inflicted far more serious bodily injury than they had. But it wasn t just
that. Life was unpredictable. Others he d known growing up had already died in ca
r accidents, been married and divorced, found themselves addicted to drugs or bo
oze, or simply moved away from this tiny town, their faces already blurring in h
is memory. What were the odds that the four of them-who d known one another since
kindergarten-would find themselves in their early thirties still spending weeken
ds together? Pretty small, he thought. But somehow, after hanging together throu
gh all the adolescent acne and girl troubles and pressure from their parents, th
en heading off to four different colleges with differing career goals, they had
each, one by one, moved back here to Beaufort. They were more like family than f
riends, right down to coded expressions and shared experiences that no outsiders
could ever fully understand.
And miraculously, the wives got along, too. They d come from different backgroun
ds and different parts of the state, but marriage, motherhood, and the endless g
ossip of small-town America were more than enough to keep them chatting regularl
y on the phone and bonding like long-lost sisters. Laird had been the first to m
arry-he and Allison had tied the knot the summer after they graduated from Wake
Forest; Joe and Megan walked the aisle a year later, after falling in love durin
g their senior year at North Carolina. Matt, who d gone to Duke, met Liz here in B
eaufort, and they were married a year after that. Travis had been the best man i
n all three weddings.
Some things had changed in the past few years, of course, largely because of t
he new additions to the families. Laird wasn t always available to go mountain bik
ing, Joe couldn t join Travis on the spur of the moment to go skiing in Colorado a
s he used to, and Matt had all but given up trying to keep up with him on most t
hings. But that was okay. They were all still available enough, and among the th
ree of them-and with enough planning-he was still able to make the most of his w
eekends.
Lost in thought, Travis hadn t realized that the conversation had lapsed.
Did I miss something?
I asked if you d talked to Monica lately, Megan said, her tone letting Travis know
he was in trouble. All six of them, he thought, took a bit too much interest in
his love life. The trouble with married people was that they seemed to believe
that everyone they knew should get married. Every woman Travis dated was thus su
bjected to subtle, though unyielding, evaluation, especially by Megan. She was u
sually the ringleader at moments like these, always trying to figure out what ma
de Travis tick when it came to women. And Travis, of course, loved nothing more
than to push her buttons in return.
Not recently, he said.
Why not? She s nice.
She s also more than a little neurotic, Travis thought. But that was beside the
point.
She broke up with me, remember?
So? It doesn t mean she doesn t want you to call.
I thought that s exactly what it meant.
Megan, along with Allison and Liz, stared at him as if he were just plain dens
e. The guys, as usual, seemed to be enjoying this. It was a regular feature of t
heir evenings.
But you were fighting, right?
So?
Did you ever think she might have simply broken up with you because she was ang
ry?
I was angry, too.
Why?
She wanted me to see a therapist.
And let me guess-you said you didn t need to see one.
The day I need to see a therapist is the day you see me hike up my skirt and cr
ochet some mittens.
Joe and Laird laughed, but Megan s eyebrows shot up. Megan, they all knew, watch
ed Oprah nearly every day.
You don t think men need therapy?
I know I don t.
But generally speaking?
Since I m not a general, I really couldn t say.
Megan leaned back in her chair. I think Monica might be on to something. If you
ask me, I think you have commitment issues.
Then I ll make sure not to ask you.
Megan leaned forward. What s the longest you ve ever dated someone? Two months? Fou
r months?
Travis pondered the question. I dated Olivia for almost a year.
I don t think she s talking about high school, Laird cracked. Occasionally, his frie
nds enjoyed throwing him under the bus, so to speak.
Thanks, Laird, Travis said.
What are friends for?
You re changing the subject, Megan reminded him.
Travis drummed his fingers on his leg. I guess I d have to say . . . I can t rememb
er.
In other words, not long enough to remember?
What can I say? I ve yet to meet any woman who could measure up to any of you.
Despite the growing darkness, he could tell she was pleased by his words. He d l
earned long ago that flattery was his best defense at moments like these, especi
ally since it was usually sincere. Megan, Liz, and Allison were terrific. All he
art and loyalty and generous common sense.
Well, just so you know, I like her, she said.
Yeah, but you like everyone I date.
No, I don t. I didn t like Leslie.
None of the wives had liked Leslie. Matt, Laird, and Joe, on the other hand, h
adn t minded her company at all, especially when she wore her bikini. She was defi
nitely a beauty, and while she wasn t the type he d ever marry, they d had a lot of fu
n while it lasted.
I m just saying that I think you should give her a call, she persisted.
I ll think about it, he said, knowing he wouldn t. He rose from the table, angling f
or an escape. Anyone need another beer?
Joe and Laird lifted their bottles in unison; the others shook their heads. Tr
avis started for the cooler before hesitating near the sliding glass door of his
house. He darted inside and changed the CD, listening to the strains of new mus
ic filtering out over the yard as he brought the beers back to the table. By the
n, Megan, Allison, and Liz were already chatting about Gwen, the woman who did t
heir hair. Gwen always had good stories, many of which concerned the illicit pre
dilections of the town s citizens.
Travis nursed his beer silently, looking out over the water.
What are you thinking about? Laird asked.
It s not important.
What is it?
Travis turned toward him. Did you ever notice how some colors are used for peop
le s names but others aren t?
What are you talking about?
White and Black. Like Mr. White, the guy who owns the tire store. And Mr. Black
, our third-grade teacher. Or even Mr. Green from the game Clue. But you never h
ear of someone named Mr. Orange or Mr. Yellow. It s like some colors make good nam
es, but other colors just sound stupid. You know what I mean?
I can t say I ve ever thought about it.
Me neither. Not until just a minute ago, I mean. But it s kind of strange, isn t it
?
Sure, Laird finally agreed.
Both men were quiet for a moment. I told you it wasn t important.
Yes, you did.
Was I right?
Yep.
When little Josie had her second temper tantrum in a fifteen-minute span-it wa
s a little before nine-Allison scooped her into her arms and gave Laird the look
, the one that said it was time to go so they could get the kids in bed. Laird d
idn t bother arguing, and when he stood up from the table, Megan glanced at Joe, L
iz nodded at Matt, and Travis knew the evening was at an end. Parents might beli
eve themselves to be the bosses, but in the end it was the kids who made the rul
es.
He supposed he could have tried to talk one of his friends into staying, and m
ight even have gotten one to agree, but he had long since grown accustomed to th
e fact that his friends lived their lives by a different schedule from his. Besi
des, he had a sneaking suspicion that Stephanie, his younger sister, might swing
by later. She was coming in from Chapel Hill, where she was working toward a ma
ster s degree in biochemistry. Though she would stay at their parents place, she wa
s usually wired after the drive and in the mood to talk, and their parents would
already be in bed. Megan, Joe, and Liz rose and started to clean up the table,
but Travis waved them off.
I ll get it in a while. No big deal.
A few minutes later, two SUVs and a minivan were being loaded with children. T
ravis stood on the front porch and waved as they pulled out of the driveway.
When they were gone, Travis wandered back to the stereo, sorted through the CD
s again, and chose Tattoo You by the Rolling Stones, then cranked up the volume.
He pulled at another beer on his way back to his chair, threw his feet up on th
e table, and leaned back. Moby sat beside him.
Just you and me for a while, he said. What time do you think Stephanie will be ro
lling in?
Moby turned away. Unless Travis said the words walk or ball or go for a ride o
r come get a bone, Moby wasn t much interested in anything he had to say.
Do you think I should call her to see if she s on her way yet?
Moby continued to stare.
Yeah, that s what I thought. She ll get here when she gets here.
He sat drinking his beer and stared out over the water. Behind him, Moby whine
d.
You want to go get your ball? he finally said.
Moby stood so quickly, he almost knocked over the chair.
It was the music, she thought, that proved to be the clincher in what had alre
ady been one of the most miserable weeks of her life. Loud music. Okay, nine o clo
ck on a Saturday night wasn t so bad, especially since he obviously had company, a
nd ten o clock wasn t all that unreasonable, either. But eleven o clock? When he was a
lone and playing fetch with his dog?
From her back deck, she could see him just sitting there in the same shorts he d
worn all day, feet on the table, tossing the ball and staring at the river. Wha
t on earth could he be thinking?
Maybe she shouldn t be so hard on him; she should simply ignore him. It was his
house, right? King of the castle and all that. He could do what he wanted. But t
hat wasn t the problem. The problem was that he had neighbors, including her, and
she had a castle, too, and neighbors were supposed to be considerate. And truth
be told, he d crossed the line. Not just because of the music. In all honesty, she
liked the music he was listening to and usually didn t really care how loud or ho
w long he played it. The problem was with his dog, Nobby, or whatever he called
him. More specifically, what his dog had done to her dog.
Molly, she was certain, was pregnant.
Molly, her beautiful, sweet, purebred collie of prize-winning lineage-the firs
t thing she d bought herself after finishing her physician assistant rotations at
the Eastern Virginia School of Medicine and the kind of dog she d always wanted-ha
d noticeably gained weight during the last couple of weeks. Even more alarming,
she noticed that Molly s nipples seemed to be growing. She could feel them now whe
never Molly rolled over to have her tummy scratched. And she was moving more slo
wly, too. Add it up, and Molly was definitely on her way to birthing a litter of
puppies that no one on earth was ever going to want. A boxer and a collie? Unco
nsciously she squinched up her face as she tried to imagine how the puppies woul
d look before finally forcing the thought away.
It had to be that man s dog. When Molly was in heat, that dog had practically st
aked out her house like a private detective, and he was the only dog she d seen wa
ndering around the neighborhood in weeks. But would her neighbor even consider f
encing his yard? Or keeping the dog inside? Or setting up a dog run? No. His mot
to seemed to be My dog shall be free! It didn t surprise her. He seemed to live his
own life by the same irresponsible motto. On her way to work, she saw him runnin
g, and when she got back, he was out biking or kayaking or in-line skating or sh
ooting baskets in his front drive with a group of neighborhood kids. A month ago
, he d put his boat in the water, and now he was wakeboarding as well. As if the m
an weren t active enough already. God forbid the man should work a minute of overt
ime, and she knew that he didn t work at all on Fridays. And what kind of job let
you head off every day wearing jeans and T-shirts? She had no idea, but she susp
ected-with a grim sort of satisfaction-that it more than likely required an apro
n and name tag.
Okay, maybe she wasn t being entirely fair. He was probably a nice guy. His frie
nds-who appeared normal enough and had kids to boot-seemed to enjoy his company
and were over there all the time. She realized she d even seen a couple of them at
the office before, when their kids had come in with the sniffles or an ear infe
ction. But what about Molly? Molly was sitting near the back door, her tail thum
ping, and Gabby felt anxious at the thought of the future. Molly would be okay,
but what about the puppies? What was going to happen to them? What if no one wan
ted them? She couldn t imagine taking them to the pound or the SPCA or whatever it
was they called it here, to be put to sleep. She couldn t do that. She wouldn t do
that. She wasn t going to have them murdered.
But what, then, was she going to do with the puppies?
It was all his fault, and he was just sitting there on his deck with his feet
propped up, acting as if he didn t have a care in the world.
This wasn t what she d dreamed about when she d first seen the house earlier this ye
ar. Even though it wasn t in Morehead City, where her boyfriend, Kevin, lived, it
was just minutes across the bridge. It was small and almost half a century old a
nd a definite fixer-upper by Beaufort standards, but the view along the creek wa
s spectacular, the yard was big enough for Molly to run, and best of all, she co
uld afford it. Just barely, what with all the loans she d taken out for PA school,
but loan officers were pretty understanding when it came to making loans to peo
ple like her. Professional, educated people.
Not like Mr. My Dog Shall Be Free and I Don t Work Fridays.
She drew a deep breath, reminding herself again that the man might be a nice g
uy. He always waved to her whenever he saw her pulling in from work, and she vag
uely remembered that he d dropped off a basket of cheese and wine to welcome her t
o the neighborhood when she d moved in a couple of months back. She hadn t been home
, but he d left it on the porch, and she d promised herself that she d send a thank-yo
u note, one that she never quite got around to writing.
Her face squinched unconsciously again. So much for moral superiority. Okay, s
he wasn t perfect, either, but this wasn t about a forgotten thank-you note. This wa
s about Molly and that man s wandering dog and unwanted puppies, and now was as go
od a time as any for them to discuss the situation. He was obviously awake.
She stepped off the back deck and started toward the tall row of hedges that s
eparated his house from hers. Part of her wished Kevin were with her, but that w
asn t going to happen. Not after their spat this morning, which started after she d
casually mentioned that her cousin was getting married. Kevin, buried in the spo
rts section of the newspaper, hadn t said a word in response, preferring to act as
if he hadn t heard her. Anything about marriage made the man get as quiet as a st
one, especially lately. She supposed she shouldn t have been surprised-they d been d
ating almost four years (a year less than her cousin, she was tempted to point o
ut), and if she d learned one thing about him, it was that if Kevin found a topic
uncomfortable, then more than likely he wouldn t say anything at all.
But Kevin wasn t the problem. Nor was the fact that lately she felt as though he
r life weren t quite what she d imagined it would be. And it wasn t the terrible week
at the office, either, one in which she d been puked on three-three!-times on Frid
ay alone, which was an all-time office record, at least according to the nurses,
who didn t bother to hide their smirks and repeated the story with glee. Nor was
she angry about Adrian Melton, the married doctor at her office who liked to tou
ch her whenever they spoke, his hand lingering just a bit too long for comfort.
And she surely wasn t angry at the fact that through it all, she hadn t once stood u
p for herself.
Nosiree, this had to do with Mr. Party being a responsible neighbor, one who w
as going to own up to the fact that he had as much of a duty to find a solution
to their problem as she did. And while she was letting him know that, maybe she d
mention that it was a little late for him to be blaring his music (even if she d
id like it), just to let him know she was serious.
As Gabby marched through the grass, the dew moistened the tips of her toes thr
ough her sandals and the moonlight reflected on the lawn like silver trails. Try
ing to figure out exactly where to begin, she barely noticed. Courtesy dictated
that she head first to the front door and knock, but with the music roaring, she
doubted he d even be able to hear it. Besides, she wanted to get this over with w
hile she was still worked up and willing to confront him head-on.
Up ahead, she spotted an opening in the hedges and headed toward it. It was pr
obably the same one that Nobby snuck through to take advantage of poor, sweet Mo
lly. Her heart squeezed again, and this time she tried to hold on to the feeling
. This was important. Very important.
Focused as she was on her mission, she didn t notice the tennis ball come flying
toward her just as she emerged from the opening. She did, however, distantly re
gister the sound of the dog galloping toward her-but only distantly-a second bef
ore she was bowled over and hit the ground.
As she lay on her back, Gabby noted dully that there were way too many stars i
n a too bright, out-of-focus sky. For a moment, she wondered why she couldn t draw
breath, then quickly became more concerned with the pain that was coursing thro
ugh her. All she could do was lie on the grass and blink with every throb.
From somewhere far away, she heard a jumble of sounds, and the world slowly st
arted coming back into focus. She tried to concentrate and realized that it wasn t
a jumble; she was hearing voices. Or, rather, a single voice. It seemed to be a
sking if she was okay.
At the same time, she gradually became conscious of a succession of warm, smel
ly, and rhythmic breezes on her cheek. She blinked once more, turned her head sl
ightly, and was confronted with an enormous, furry, square head towering over he
r. Nobby, she concluded fuzzily.
Ahhhh . . . , she whimpered, trying to sit up. As she moved, the dog licked her
face.
Moby! Down! the voice said, sounding closer. Are you okay? Maybe you shouldn t try
to get up yet!
I m okay, she said, finally raising herself into a seated position. She took a cou
ple of deep breaths, still feeling dizzy. Wow, she thought, that really hurt. In
the darkness, she sensed someone squatting beside her, though she could barely
make out his features.
I m really sorry, the voice said.
What happened?
Moby accidentally knocked you down. He was going after a ball.
Who s Moby?
My dog.
Then who s Nobby?
What?
She brought a hand to her temple. Never mind.
Are you sure you re okay?
Yeah, she said, still dizzy but feeling the pain subside to a low throb. As she
began to rise, she felt her neighbor place his hand on her arm, helping her up.
She was reminded of the toddlers she saw at the office who struggled to stay bal
anced and remain upright. When she finally had her feet under her, she felt him
release her arm.
Some welcome, huh? he asked.
His voice still sounded far away, but she knew it wasn t, and when she faced him
, she found herself focusing up at someone at least six inches taller than her o
wn five feet seven. She wasn t used to that, and as she tilted her head upward, sh
e noticed his angled cheekbones and clean skin. His brown hair was wavy, curling
naturally at the ends, and his teeth gleamed white. Up close, he was good-looki
ng-okay, really good-looking-but she suspected that he knew it as well. Lost in
thought, she opened her mouth to say something, then closed it again, realizing
she d forgotten the question.
I mean, here you are, coming over to visit, and you get slammed by my dog, he we
nt on. Like I said, I m really sorry. Usually he pays a bit more attention. Say hey
, Moby.
The dog was sitting on his haunches, acting pleased as punch, and with that, s
he suddenly remembered the purpose of her visit. Beside her, Moby raised a paw i
n greeting. It was cute-and he was cute for a boxer-but she wasn t about to fall f
or it. This was the mutt who d not only tackled her, but ruined Molly as well. He
probably should have been named Mugger. Or better yet, Pervert.
You sure you re okay?
The way he asked made her realize that this wasn t the sort of confrontation she d
wanted, and she tried to summon the feeling she d had on her way over.
I m fine, she said, her tone sharp.
For an awkward moment, they eyed each other without speaking. Finally he motio
ned over his shoulder with his thumb. Would you like to sit on the deck? I m just l
istening to some music.
Why do you think I want to sit on the deck? she snapped, feeling more in control
.
He hesitated. Because you were coming over?
Oh yeah, she thought. That.
I mean, I suppose we could stand here by the hedges if you d rather, he continued.
She held up her hands to stop him, impatient to get this over with. I came over
here because I wanted to talk to you . . .
She broke off when he slapped at his arm. Me, too, he said before she could get
started again. I ve been meaning to drop by to officially welcome you to the neighb
orhood. Did you get my basket?
She heard a buzzing near her ear and waved at it. Yes. Thank you for that, she s
aid, slightly distracted. But what I wanted to talk about . . .
She trailed off when she realized he wasn t paying attention. Instead, he was fa
nning the air between them. You sure you don t want to head to the deck? he pressed.
The mosquitoes are vicious around the bushes here.
What I was trying to say wasThere s one on your earlobe, he said, pointing.
Her right hand shot up instinctively.
The other one.
She swatted at it and saw a smear of blood on her fingers as she pulled her ha
nd back. Gross, she thought.
There s another right by your cheek.
She waved again at the growing swarm. What s going on?
Like I said, it s the bushes. They breed in the water, and it s always moist in the
shade. . . .
Fine, she relented. We can talk on the deck.
A moment later they were in the clear, moving quickly. I hate mosquitoes, which
is why I ve got some citronella candles going on the table. That s usually enough t
o keep them away. They get much worse later in the summer. He left just enough sp
ace between them so they wouldn t accidentally bump. I don t think we ve formally met,
by the way. I m Travis Parker.
She felt a flicker of uncertainty. She wasn t here to be his buddy, after all, b
ut expectation and manners prevailed, and she answered before she could stop her
self. I m Gabby Holland.
Nice to meet you.
Yeah, she said. She made a point to cross her arms as she said it, then subconsc
iously brought a hand to her ribs where a dull ache remained. From there, it tra
veled to her ear, which was already beginning to itch.
Staring at her profile, Travis could tell that she was angry. Her mouth had a
tight, pinched look he d seen on any number of girlfriends. Somehow he knew the an
ger was directed at him, though he had no idea why. Aside from being tackled by
the dog, that is. But that wasn t quite it, he decided. He remembered the expressi
ons that his kid sister, Stephanie, was famous for, ones that signaled a slow bu
ildup of resentment over time, and that s how Gabby seemed to be acting now. As if
she d worked herself up to this. But there the similarities with his sister ended
. While Stephanie had grown up to become a certifiable beauty, Gabby was attract
ive in a similar but not quite perfect kind of way. Her blue eyes were a little
too wide set, her nose was just a bit too big, and red hair was always hard to p
ull off, but somehow these imperfections lent an air of vulnerability to her nat
ural good looks, which most men would find arresting.
In the silence, Gabby tried to collect her thoughts. I was coming over becauseHold on, he said. Before you begin, why don t you sit down? I ll be right there. He s
arted for the cooler, then rotated in midstride. Would you like a beer?
No, thank you, she said, wishing she could get this over with. Refusing to sit d
own, she turned with the hope of confronting him as he strode past. But, too qui
ckly, he dropped into his chair, leaned back, and put his feet on the table.
Flustered, Gabby continued to stand. This was not working out as she d planned.
He popped open his beer and took a short pull. Aren t you going to sit? he asked o
ver his shoulder.
I d rather remain standing, thank you.
Travis squinted and shaded his eyes with his hands. But I can barely see you, he
said. The porch lights are shining behind you.
I came over here to tell you somethingCan you move just a few feet to the side? he asked.
She made an impatient noise and moved a few steps.
Better?
Not yet.
By then, she was almost against the table. She threw up her hands in exasperat
ion.
Maybe you should just sit, he suggested.
Fine! she said. She pulled out a chair and took a seat. He was throwing this who
le thing completely out of whack. I came over because I wanted to talk to you . .
. , she began, wondering if she should start with Molly s situation or what it gen
erally meant to be a good neighbor.
He raised his eyebrows. You ve already said that.
I know! she said. I ve been trying to tell you, but you haven t let me finish!
He saw her glare at him just the way his sister used to but still had no idea
what she was so wound up about. After a second, she began to speak, a bit hesita
ntly at first, as if wary that he was going to interrupt her again. He didn t, and
she seemed to find her rhythm, the words coming more and more quickly. She talk
ed about how she d found the house and how excited she d been, and how owning a home
had been her dream for a long time, before the topic wandered to Molly and how
Molly s nipples were getting bigger. At first, Travis had no idea who Molly was-wh
ich lent that part of the monologue a surreal quality-but as she continued, he g
radually realized that Molly was Gabby s collie, which he d noticed her walking occa
sionally. After that, she began talking about ugly puppies and murder and, stran
gely, something about neither Dr. Hands-on-me nor vomit having anything to do with
the way she was feeling, but in all honesty, it made little sense until she sta
rted gesturing at Moby. That allowed him to put two and two together until it da
wned on him that she believed Moby was responsible for Molly getting pregnant.
He wanted to tell her that it wasn t Moby, but she was on such a roll, he though
t it best to let her finish before protesting. By that point, her story had veer
ed back on itself. Bits and pieces of her life continued to come tumbling out, l
ittle snippets that sounded unrehearsed and unconnected, along with bursts of an
ger randomly directed his way. It felt as though she went on for a good twenty m
inutes or so, but Travis knew it couldn t have been that long. Even so, being on t
he receiving end of a stranger s angry accusations about his failures as a neighbo
r wasn t exactly easy, nor did he appreciate the way she was talking about Moby. M
oby, in his opinion, was just about the most perfect dog in the world.
Sometimes she paused, and in those moments, Travis tried unsuccessfully to res
pond. But that didn t work, either, because she immediately overrode him. Instead,
he listened and-at least in those moments when she wasn t insulting him or his do
g-sensed a trace of desperation, even some confusion, as to what was happening i
n her life. The dog, whether she realized it or not, was only a small part of wh
at was bothering her. He felt a surge of compassion for her and found himself no
dding, just to let her know he was paying attention. Every now and then, she ask
ed a question, but before he could respond, she would answer for him. Aren t neighb
ors supposed to consider their actions? Yes, obviously, he started to say, but sh
e beat him to it. Of course they are! she cried, and Travis found himself nodding
again.
When her tirade finally wound down, she ended up staring at the ground, spent.
Although her mouth was set in that same straight line, Travis thought he saw te
ars, and he wondered whether he should offer to bring her a tissue. They were in
side the house-too far away, he realized-but then he remembered the napkins near
the grill. He rose quickly, grabbed a few, and brought them to her. He offered
her one, and after debating, she took it. She wiped the corner of her eyes. Now
that she d calmed down, he noted she was even prettier than he d first realized.
She drew a shaky breath. The question is, what are you going to do? she finally
asked.
He hesitated, trying to draw a bead on what she meant. About what?
The puppies!
He could hear the anger beginning to percolate again, and he raised his hands
in an attempt to calm her. Let s start at the beginning. Are you sure she s pregnant?
Of course I m sure! Didn t you hear a word I said?
Have you had her checked by a vet?
I m a physician assistant. I spent two and a half years in PA school and another
year in rotations. I know when someone s pregnant.
With people, I m sure you do. But with dogs, it s different.
How would you know?
I ve had a lot of experience with dogs. Actually, IYeah, I ll bet, she thought, cutting him off with a wave. She s moving slower, her
nipples are swollen, and she s been acting strangely. What else could it be? Honest
ly, every man she d ever met believed that having a dog as a kid made him an exper
t on all things canine.
What if she has an infection? That would cause swelling. And if the infection i
s bad enough, she might be in some pain, too, which could explain the way she s ac
ting.
Gabby opened her mouth to speak, then closed it when she realized that she had
n t thought of that. An infection could cause swelling in the nipples-mastitis or
something like that-and for a moment, she felt a surge of relief wash through he
r. As she considered it further, however, reality came crashing back. It wasn t on
e or two nipples, it was all of them. She twisted the napkin, wishing he would j
ust listen.
She s pregnant, and she s going to have puppies. And you re going to have to help me
find homes for them, since I m not bringing them to the pound.
I m sure it wasn t Moby.
I knew you were going to say that.
But you should knowShe shook her head furiously. This was so typical. Pregnancy was always a woma
n s problem. She stood up from her chair. You re going to have to take some responsib
ility here. And I hope you realize it s not going to be easy to find homes for the
m.
ButWhat on earth was that about? Stephanie asked.
Gabby had disappeared into the hedge; a few seconds later, he d seen her enter h
er home through the sliding glass door. He was still sitting at the table, feeli
ng slightly shell-shocked, when he spotted his sister approaching.
How long have you been here?
Long enough, she said. She saw the cooler near the door and pulled out a beer. Fo
r a second there, I thought she was going to punch you. Then I thought she was g
oing to cry. And then she looked like she wanted to punch you again.
That s about right, he admitted. He rubbed his forehead, still processing the scen
e.
Still charming the girlfriends, I see.
She s not my girlfriend. She s my neighbor.
Even better. Stephanie took a seat. How long have you been dating?
We re not. Actually, that s the first time I ve ever met her.
Impressive, Stephanie observed. I didn t think you had it in you.
What?
You know-making someone hate you so quickly. That s a rare gift. Usually you have
to know a person better first.
Very funny.
I thought so. And Moby . . . She turned toward the dog and lifted a scolding fin
ger. You should know better.
Moby wiggled his tail before getting to his feet. He walked toward her, nuzzli
ng Stephanie in her lap. She pushed the top of the head, which only made Moby pu
sh back harder.
Easy there, you old hound dog.
It s not Moby s fault.
So you said. Not that she wanted to hear it, of course. What s with her?
She was just upset.
I could tell. It took me a little while before I could figure out what she was
talking about. But I must say that it was entertaining.
Be nice.
I am nice. Stephanie leaned back, evaluating her brother. She was kind of cute, d
on t you think?
I didn t notice.
Yeah, sure you didn t. I d be willing to bet it was the first thing you noticed. I
saw the way you were ogling her.
My, my. You re in quite a mood this evening.
I should be. The exam I just finished was a killer.
What does that mean? You think you missed a question?
No. But I had to really think hard about some of them.
Must be nice being you.
Oh, it is. I ve got three more exams next week, too.
Poor baby. Life as a perpetual student is so much harder than actually earning
a living.
Look who s talking. You were in school longer than me. Which reminds me . . . how
do you think Mom and Dad would feel if I told them I wanted to stay in for anot
her couple of years to get my PhD?
At Gabby s house, the kitchen light flashed on. Distracted, he took a moment to
answer.
They d probably be okay with it. You know Mom and Dad.
I know. But lately I get the feeling that they want me to meet someone and sett
le down.
Join the club. I ve had that feeling for years.
Yeah, but it s different for me. I m a woman. My biological clock is ticking.
The kitchen light next door flashed off; a few seconds later, another flashed
on in the bedroom. He wondered idly whether Gabby was turning in for the night.
You ve got to remember that Mom was married at twenty-one, Stephanie went on. By tw
enty-three, she already had you. She waited for a response but got nothing. But th
en again, look how well you turned out. Maybe I should use that as my argument.
Her words filtered in slowly, and he furrowed his brow when they finally regis
tered.
Is that an insult?
I tried, she said with a smirk. Just checking to see if you re paying attention to
me or whether you re thinking about your new friend over there.
She s not a friend, he said. He knew he sounded defensive but he couldn t help it.
Not now, his sister said. But I get a funny feeling she will be.
Two
Gabby wasn t sure how she felt after leaving her neighbor s, and all she could do
after closing her door was to lean against it while she tried to regain her equi
librium.
Maybe she shouldn t have gone over there, she thought. It certainly hadn t done an
y good. Not only hadn t he apologized, he d gone so far as to deny that his dog was
responsible. Still, as she finally moved away from the door, she found herself s
miling. At least she d done it. She d stood up for herself and told him exactly how
it was going to be. It had taken courage to do that, she told herself. She norma
lly wasn t very good at speaking her mind. Not to Kevin about the fact that his pl
ans for their future seemed to go only as far as the next weekend. Or to Dr. Mel
ton about the way she felt when he touched her. Not even to her mom, who always
seemed to have opinions on how Gabby could improve herself.
She stopped smiling when she caught sight of Molly sleeping in the corner. A q
uick peek was enough to remind her that the end result hadn t changed and that may
be, just maybe, she could have done a better job of convincing him that it was h
is duty to help her. As she replayed the evening, she felt a wave of embarrassme
nt. She knew she d been rambling, but after being knocked down, she had lost her f
ocus, and then her frustration had rendered her completely unable to stop talkin
g. Her mother would have had a field day with that one. She loved her mother, bu
t her mother was one of those ladies who never lost control. It drove Gabby craz
y; more than once during her teenage years, she d wanted to take her mother by the
arms and shake her, just to elicit a spontaneous response. Of course, it wouldn t
have worked. Her mother would have simply allowed the shaking to continue until
Gabby was finished, then smoothed her hair and made some infuriating comment li
ke Well, Gabrielle, now that you ve gotten that out of your system, can we discuss
this like ladies?
Ladies. Gabby couldn t stand that word. When her mother said it, she was often p
lagued by a sweeping sense of failure, one that made her think she had a long wa
y to go and no map to get there.
Of course, her mother couldn t help the way she was, any more than Gabby could.
Her mother was a walking cliché of southern womanhood, having grown up wear
ing frilly dresses and being presented to the community s elite at the Savannah Ch
ristmas Cotillion, one of the most exclusive debutante balls in the country. She
had also served as treasurer for the Tri Delts at the University of Georgia, an
other family tradition, and while in college, she had apparently been of the opi
nion that academics were far less important than working toward a Mrs. degree, whi
ch she believed the only career choice for a proper southern lady. It went witho
ut saying that she wanted the Mr. part of the equation to be worthy of the family
name. Which essentially meant rich.
Enter her father. Her dad, a successful real estate developer and general cont
ractor, was twelve years older than his wife when they d married, and if not as ri
ch as some, he was certainly well-off. Still, Gabby could remember studying the
wedding photos of her parents as they stood outside the church and wondering how
two such different people could have ever fallen in love. While her mom loved t
he pheasant at the country club, Dad preferred biscuits and gravy at the local d
iner; while Mom never walked as far as the mailbox without her makeup, Dad wore
jeans, and his hair was always a bit disheveled. But love each other they did-of
this, Gabby had no doubt. In the mornings, she would sometimes catch her parent
s in a tender embrace, and never once had she heard them argue. Nor did they hav
e separate beds, like so many of Gabby s friends parents, who often struck her as b
usiness partners more than lovers. Even now, when she visited, she would find he
r parents snuggled up on the couch together, and when her friends marveled, she
would simply shake her head and admit that for whatever reason, they were perfec
tly suited to each other.
Much to her mother s endless disappointment, Gabby, unlike her three honey blond
sisters, had always been more like her father. Even as a child, she preferred o
veralls to dresses, adored climbing in trees, and spent hours playing in the dir
t. Every now and then, she would traipse behind her father at a job site, mimick
ing his movements as he checked the seals on newly installed windows or peeked i
nto boxes that had recently arrived from Mitchell s hardware store. Her dad taught
her to bait a hook and to fish, and she loved riding beside him in his old, rum
bly truck with its broken radio, a truck he d never bothered to trade in. After wo
rk, they would either play catch or shoot baskets while her mom watched from the
kitchen window in a way that always struck Gabby as not only disapproving, but
uncomprehending. More often than not, her sisters could be seen standing beside
her, their mouths agape.
While Gabby liked to tell people about the free spirit she d been as a child, in
reality she d ended up straddling both her parents visions of the world, mainly be
cause her mom was an expert when it came to the manipulative power of motherhood
. As she grew older, Gabby acquiesced more to her mother s opinions about clothing
and the proper behavior for ladies, simply to avoid feeling guilty. Of all the
weapons in her mother s arsenal, guilt was far and away the most effective, and Mo
m always knew just how to use it. Because of a raised eyebrow here and a little
comment there, Gabby ended up in cotillion classes and dance lessons; she dutifu
lly learned to play the piano and, like her mother, was formally presented at th
e Savannah Christmas Cotillion. If her mother was proud that night-and she was,
by the look on her face-Gabby by that time felt as if she were finally ready to
make her own decisions, some of which she knew her mother wouldn t approve. Sure,
she wanted to get married and have children someday just like Mom, but by then s
he d realized that she also wanted a career like Dad. More specifically, she wante
d to be a doctor.
Oh, Mom said all the right things when she found out. In the beginning, anyway
. But then the subtle guilt offensive began. As Gabby aced exam after exam in co
llege, her mom would sometimes frown and wonder aloud whether it was possible to
both work full-time as a doctor and be a full-time wife and mother.
But if work is more important to you than family, her mom would say, then by all
means, become a doctor.
Gabby tried to resist her mother s campaign, but in the end, old habits die hard
and she eventually settled on PA school instead of medical school. The reasons
made sense: She d still see patients, but her hours would be relatively stable and
she d never be on call-definitely a more family-friendly option. Still, it someti
mes bugged her that her mother put the idea in her mind in the first place.
But she couldn t deny that family was important to her. That s the thing about bei
ng the product of happily married parents. You grow up thinking the fairy tale i
s real, and more than that, you think you re entitled to live it. So far, though,
it wasn t working out as planned. She and Kevin had dated long enough to fall in l
ove, survive the ordinary ups and downs that break most couples apart, and even
talk about the future. She had decided that he was the one she wanted to spend h
er life with, and she frowned, thinking about their most recent argument.
As if sensing Gabby s distress, Molly struggled to her feet and waddled over, nu
zzling Gabby s hand. Gabby stroked her fur, allowing it to run through her fingers
.
I wonder if it s stress, Gabby said, wishing her life could be more like Molly s. Si
mple, without cares or responsibilities . . . well, except for the pregnancy par
t. Do I seem stressed to you?
Molly didn t answer, but she didn t have to. Gabby knew she was stressed. She coul
d feel it in her shoulders whenever she paid the bills, or when Dr. Melton leere
d at her, or when Kevin played stupid about what she d expected by agreeing to mov
e closer to him. It didn t help that, aside from Kevin, she didn t really have any f
riends here. She d barely gotten to know anyone outside the office, and truth be t
old, her neighbor was the first person she d spoken with since she d moved in. Think
ing back, she supposed she could have been nicer about the whole thing. She felt
a twinge of remorse about spouting off the way she had, especially since he did
seem like a friendly guy. When he d helped her up, he d seemed almost like a friend
. And once she d started babbling, he hadn t interrupted her once, which was sort of
refreshing, too.
It was remarkable now that she thought about it. Considering how crazy she mus
t have sounded, he hadn t gotten upset or snapped at her, which was something Kevi
n would have done. Just thinking about the gentle way he d helped her to her feet
made the blood rush to her cheeks. And then there had been a moment after he d han
ded her the napkin that she d caught him staring at her in a way that suggested he d
found her attractive as well. It had been a long time since something like that
had happened, and even though she didn t want to admit it, it made her feel good
about herself. She missed that. Amazing what a little truthful confrontation cou
ld do for the soul.
She went into the bedroom and slipped into a pair of comfy sweats and a soft,
worn shirt she d owned since her freshman year in college. Molly trailed behind he
r, and when Gabby realized what she needed, she motioned toward the door.
You ready to go outside? she asked.
Molly s tail started to wag as she moved toward the door. Gabby inspected her cl
osely. She still looked pregnant, but maybe her neighbor had a point. She should
bring her to the vet, if only to be sure. Besides, she had no idea how to care
for a pregnant dog. She wondered if Molly needed extra vitamins, which reminded
her again that she was falling behind in her own resolution to lead a healthier
life. Eating better, exercising, sleeping regularly, stretching: She d planned to
start as soon as she d moved into the house. A new-house resolution of sorts, but
it hadn t really taken hold. Tomorrow, she d definitely go jogging, then have a sala
d for lunch and another one for dinner. And since she was ready to get on with s
ome serious life changes, she might just ask Kevin point-blank about his plans f
or their future.
Then again, maybe that wasn t such a good idea. Standing up to the neighbor was
one thing; was she ready to accept the consequences if she wasn t happy with Kevin s
answer? What if he had no plans? Did she really want to quit her first job afte
r a couple of months? Sell her house? Move away? Just how far was she willing to
go?
She wasn t sure of anything, other than the fact that she didn t want to lose him.
But trying to be healthier-now that, she could definitely do. One step at a tim
e, right? Her decision made, she stepped onto the back deck and watched as Molly
padded down the steps and headed toward the far end of the yard. The air was st
ill warm, but a light breeze had picked up. The stars spread across the sky in r
andom, intricate patterns that, aside from the Big Dipper, she d never been able t
o discern, and she resolved that she d buy a book on astronomy tomorrow, right aft
er lunch. She d spend a couple of days learning the basics, then invite Kevin to s
pend a romantic evening at the beach, where she d point to the sky and ever so cas
ually mention something astronomically impressive. She closed her eyes, imaginin
g the scene, and stood straighter. Tomorrow, she d start becoming a new person. A
better person. And she d figure out what to do about Molly, too. Even if she had t
o beg, she d find homes for every one of those puppies.
But first, she d bring her to the vet.
Three
It was shaping up to be one of those days when Gabby wondered why she d decided
to work in a pediatric office. She had the chance, after all, to work in a cardi
ology unit at the hospital, which had been her plan all the way through PA schoo
l. She had loved assisting in challenging surgeries, and it seemed like a perfec
t fit until her final rotation, when she happened to work with a pediatrician wh
o filled her head with ideas about the nobility and joy of caring for infants. D
r. Bender, a gray-haired medical veteran who never stopped smiling and knew prac
tically every child in Sumter, South Carolina, convinced her that while cardiolo
gy might pay better and seem more glamorous, there was nothing quite as rewardin
g as holding newborns and watching them develop over the critical first years of
life. Usually she nodded dutifully, but on her last day, he d forced the issue by
placing an infant in her arms. As the baby cooed, Dr. Bender s voice floated towa
rd her: In cardiology, everything is an emergency and your patients always seem t
o get sicker, no matter what you do. After a while, that has to be draining. It
can burn you out quick if you re not careful. But caring for a little fella like t
his . . . He paused, motioning to the baby. This is the highest calling in the wor
ld.
Despite a job offer in cardiology at a hospital in her hometown, she d taken a j
ob with Drs. Furman and Melton in Beaufort, North Carolina. Dr. Furman struck he
r as oblivious, Dr. Melton struck her as a flirt, but it was an opportunity to b
e nearer to Kevin. And on some level, she d believed that Dr. Bender just might be
right. He d been right about the infants. For the most part, she loved working wi
th them, even when she had to give them shots and their screams made her wince.
Toddlers were okay, too. Most of them had darling personalities, and she loved t
o watch as they cuddled their blankets or teddy bears and stared at her with gui
leless expressions. It was the parents who drove her crazy. Dr. Bender had faile
d to mention one critical point: In cardiology, you dealt with a patient who cam
e to the office because he or she wanted or needed to; in pediatrics, you dealt
with a patient who was often under the care of neurotic, know-it-all parents. Ev
a Bronson was a case in point.
Eva, who was holding George on her lap in the exam room, seemed to be looking
down her nose at Gabby. The fact that she wasn t technically a physician and was r
elatively young made many parents believe she was little more than an overpaid n
urse.
Are you sure Dr. Furman can t squeeze us in? She emphasized the word doctor.
He s at the hospital, Gabby replied. He won t be in until later. Besides, I m pretty s
re he d agree with me. Your son seems fine.
But he s still coughing.
Like I said before, toddlers can cough for up to six weeks after a cold. Their
lungs take longer to heal, but it s perfectly normal at this age.
So you re not going to give him an antibiotic?
No. He doesn t need one. His ears were clear, his sinuses were clear, and I didn t
hear any evidence of bronchitis in his lungs. His temperature is normal, and he
looks healthy.
George, who d just turned two, was squirming in Eva s lap, trying to get free, a b
undle of happy energy. Eva tightened her grip.
Since Dr. Furman s not here, maybe Dr. Melton should see him. I m pretty sure he ne
eds an antibiotic. Half the kids in his day care are on antibiotics right now. S
omething s going around.
Gabby pretended to write something in the chart. Eva Bronson always wanted an
antibiotic for George. Eva Bronson was an antibiotic junkie, if there was such a
thing.
If he spikes a fever, you can bring him back and I ll examine him again.
I don t want to bring him back. That s why I brought him in today. I think he shoul
d see a doctor.
Gabby did her best to keep her tone steady. Okay, I ll see if Dr. Melton can sque
eze in a couple of minutes for you.
As she left the room, Gabby paused in the hallway, knowing she needed to prepa
re herself. She didn t want to talk to Dr. Melton again; she d been doing her best t
o avoid him all morning. As soon as Dr. Furman had left for the hospital to be p
resent at an emergency C-section at Carteret General Hospital in Morehead City,
Dr. Melton had sidled up next to her, close enough for her to notice that he d rec
ently gargled with mouthwash.
I guess we ll be on our own this morning, he d said.
Maybe it won t be too busy, she d said neutrally. She wasn t ready to confront him, no
t without Dr. Furman around.
Mondays are always busy. Hopefully we won t have to work through lunch.
Hopefully, she d echoed.
Dr. Melton had reached for the file on the door of the exam room across the ha
ll. He d scanned it quickly, and just as Gabby was about to leave, she d heard his v
oice again. Speaking of lunch, have you ever had a fish taco?
Gabby blinked. Huh?
I know this great place in Morehead near the beach. Maybe we could swing by. We
could bring some back for the staff, too.
Though he had maintained a pretense of professionalism-he would have sounded t
he same way had he been speaking to Dr. Furman-Gabby had felt herself recoil.
I can t, she d said. I m supposed to bring Molly to the vet. I made an appointment thi
morning.
And they can get you in and out of there in time?
They said they would.
He had hesitated. Okay then, he d said. Maybe another time.
As Gabby reached for a file, she d winced. You okay? Dr. Melton had asked.
I m just a little sore from working out, she d said before disappearing into the roo
m.
Actually, she was really sore. Ridiculously sore. Everything from her neck to
her ankles throbbed, and it seemed to be getting worse. Had she simply jogged on
Sunday, she figured she probably would have been okay. But that hadn t been enoug
h. Not for the new, improved Gabby. After jogging-and proud of the fact that eve
n though her pace had been slow, she hadn t had to stop once to walk-she d headed to
Gold s Gym in Morehead City to sign up for a membership. She d signed the paperwork
while the trainer explained the various classes with complicated names that wer
e scheduled almost every hour. As she got up to leave, he d mentioned that a new c
lass called Body Pump was about to start in a few minutes.
It s a fantastic class, he d said. It works the whole body. You get strength and card
io in a single workout. You should try it.
So she had. And may God forgive him for how it made her feel.
Not immediately, of course. No, during the class, she d been fine. Though deep d
own she knew she should pace herself, she found herself trying to keep up with t
he scantily clad, surgically enhanced, mascara-wearing woman next to her. She d li
fted and pushed weights, jogged in place to the beat, then lifted some more and
jogged in place, over and over. By the time she left, with muscles quivering, sh
e d felt as if she d taken the next step in her evolution. She d ordered herself a pro
tein shake on the way out the door, just to complete the transformation.
On the way home, she d swung by the bookstore to buy a book on astronomy, and la
ter, as she was about to fall asleep, she d realized she felt better about the fut
ure than she had in a long time, except for the fact that her muscles seemed to
be stiffening by the minute.
Unfortunately, the new, improved Gabby had found it exceptionally painful to r
ise from bed the following morning. Everything hurt. No, scratch that. It was be
yond hurt. Way beyond. It was excruciating. Every muscle in her body felt as if
it had been run through a juice blender. Her back, her chest, her stomach, her l
egs, her butt, her arms, her neck . . . even her fingers ached. It took three at
tempts to sit up in bed, and after staggering to the bathroom, she d found that br
ushing her teeth without screaming took a herculean amount of self-control. In t
he medicine cabinet, she d found herself reaching for pretty much everything-Tylen
ol, Bayer aspirin, Aleve-and in the end, she d decided to take them all. She d washe
d down the pills with a glass of water and watched herself wince while swallowin
g.
Okay, she admitted, maybe she d overdone it.
But it was too late now, and even worse, the painkillers hadn t worked. Or maybe
they had. She was, after all, able to function in the office, as long as she mo
ved slowly. But the pain was still there, and Dr. Furman was gone, and the last
thing she wanted was to deal with Dr. Melton.
Without another option, she asked one of the nurses which room he was in and,
after knocking on the door, poked her head in. Dr. Melton looked up from his pat
ient, his expression becoming animated as soon as he saw her.
Sorry to interrupt, she said. Can I talk to you for a second?
Sure, he said. He rose from his stool, set aside the file on his way out, and cl
osed the door behind him. Did you change your mind about lunch?
She shook her head and told him about Eva Bronson and George; he promised he d t
alk to them as quickly as he could. As she left, she could feel his eyes lingeri
ng on her as she limped down the hall.
It was half-past noon when Gabby finished with her last patient of the morning
. Clutching her purse, she hobbled toward her car, knowing she didn t have much ti
me. Her next appointment was in forty-five minutes, but assuming she wasn t held u
p at the vet, she would be okay. It was one of the nice things about living in a
small town of fewer than four thousand people. Everything was only minutes away
. While Morehead City-five times the size of Beaufort-was just across the bridge
that spanned the Intracoastal Waterway and the place where most people did thei
r weekend shopping, the short distance was enough to make this town feel distinc
t and isolated, like most of the towns down east, which was what the locals call
ed this part of the state.
It was a pretty place, especially the historic district. On a day like today,
with temperatures perfect for strolling, Beaufort resembled what she imagined Sa
vannah to be in the first century of its existence.
Wide streets, shade trees, and a little more than a hundred restored homes occ
upied several blocks, eventually giving way to Front Street and a short boardwal
k that overlooked the marina. Slips were occupied by leisure and working boats o
f every shape and size; a magnificent yacht worth millions might be docked next
to a small crab boat on one side, with a lovingly maintained sailboat on the oth
er. There were a couple of restaurants with gorgeous views: old, homegrown place
s with local character, complete with covered patios and picnic tables that made
customers feel as if they were on vacation in a place where time stood still. O
n occasional weekend evenings, bands would perform at the restaurants, and last
summer on the Fourth of July, when she was visiting Kevin, so many people came t
o hear the music and see the fireworks that the marina literally filled with boa
ts. Without enough slips to accommodate them, the boats were simply tied up to o
ne another, and their owners would walk from boat to boat until they reached the
dock, accepting or offering beers to strangers as they went.
On the opposite side of the street, there were real estate offices mingled wit
h art shops and tourist traps. In the evenings, Gabby liked to stroll through th
e art shops to examine the work. When she was young, she d dreamed of painting or
drawing for a living; it took a few years before she realized that her ambition
far exceeded her talent. That didn t mean she couldn t appreciate quality work, and
every now and then she found a photograph or painting that made her pause. Twice
, she d actually made purchases, and both paintings now hung in her house. She d con
sidered buying a few more to complement them, but her monthly budget prevented i
t, at least for the time being.
A few minutes later, Gabby pulled into her driveway and yelped as she got out
of the car before gamely making her way to the front door. Molly met her on the
porch, took her sweet time smelling the flower bed until she took care of busine
ss, then hopped into the passenger seat. Gabby yelped again as she got back in,
then rolled down the window so Molly could hang her head out, something she love
d to do.
The Down East Veterinary Clinic was only a couple of minutes away, and she pul
led into the parking lot, listening to the crunch of gravel beneath her wheels.
A rustic and weathered Victorian, the clinic building appeared less like an offi
ce than a home. She slipped a leash on Molly, then stole a glance at her watch.
She prayed the vet would be quick.
The screen door opened with a loud squeak, and she felt Molly tug at the leash
as she was confronted with odors typical of animal clinics. Gabby approached th
e front desk, but before she could speak, the receptionist stood up from behind
her desk.
Is this Molly? she asked.
Gabby didn t bother to hide her surprise. Living in a small town still took some
getting used to. Yeah. I m Gabby Holland.
Nice to meet you. I m Terri, by the way. What a beautiful dog.
Thank you.
We were wondering when you d get here. You have to get back to work, right? She gr
abbed a clipboard. Let me go ahead and get you set up in a room. You can do the p
aperwork there. That way, the vet can see you right away. It shouldn t be long. He s
almost done.
Great, Gabby said. I really appreciate it.
The receptionist led them to an adjoining room; just inside was a scale, and s
he helped Molly get on it. It s no big deal. Besides, I bring my kids to your pedia
tric office all the time. How do you like it so far?
I m enjoying it, she said. It s busier than I thought it would be.
Terri recorded the weight, then proceeded down the hallway. I just love Dr. Mel
ton. He s been wonderful with my son.
I ll tell him, Gabby said.
Terri motioned to a small room furnished with a metal table and plastic chair
and handed the clipboard to Gabby. Just fill that out, and I ll let the doctor know
you re here.
Terri left them alone, and Gabby gingerly took a seat, wincing as she felt the
muscles in her legs plead in agony. She took a couple of deep breaths, waiting
until the pain passed, then filled out the paperwork while Molly wandered the ro
om.
Less than a minute later, the door opened and the first thing Gabby noticed wa
s the white smock; an instant later, the name embroidered in blue letters. Gabby
was just about to speak, but sudden recognition made it impossible.
Hi, Gabby, Travis said. How are you?
Gabby continued to stare, wondering what on earth he was doing here. She was a
bout to say something when she realized that his eyes were blue, when she d though
t they were brown. Strange. StillI take it this is Molly, he said, interrupting her thoughts. Hey, girl . . . He sq
uatted and rubbed Molly s neck. You like that? Oh, you re a sweet one, aren t you? How
you feeling, girl?
The sound of his voice brought her back, and memories of their argument the ot
her night followed. You re-you re the vet? Gabby stammered.
Travis nodded as he continued to scratch Molly s neck. Along with my dad. He star
ted the clinic, I joined him after I finished school.
This couldn t be happening. Of all the people in this town, it had to be him. Wh
y on earth couldn t she have an ordinary, uncomplicated day?
Why didn t you say anything the other night?
I did. I told you to bring her to the vet, remember?
Her eyes narrowed. The man seemed to enjoy infuriating her. You know what I mea
n.
He looked up. You mean about me being the vet? I tried to tell you, but you wou
ldn t let me.
You should have said something anyway.
I don t think you were in any mood to hear it. But that s water under the bridge. N
o hard feelings. He smiled. Let me check this girl out, okay? I know you have to g
et back to work, so I ll make this quick.
She could feel her anger rising at his nonchalant No hard feelings. Part of her
wanted to leave right then. Unfortunately, he was already beginning to prod Moll
y s belly. Nor, she realized, could she rise quickly, even if she tried, since rig
ht now her legs seemed to be on strike. Chagrined, she crossed her arms and felt
something akin to a knife blade plunging into her back and shoulders while Trav
is readied the stethoscope. She bit her lip, proud of the fact she hadn t yelped a
gain.
Travis glanced at her. You okay?
I m fine, she said.
You sure? You seem like you re in pain.
I m fine, she repeated.
Ignoring her tone, he returned his attention to the dog. He moved the stethosc
ope, listened again, then examined one of her nipples. Finally, he slipped on a
rubber glove with a snap and did a quick internal.
Well, she s definitely pregnant, he said, removing the glove and tossing it into t
he bin. And from the looks of things, she s about seven weeks along.
I told you. She glared at him. And Moby is responsible, she refrained from addin
g.
Travis stood and put the stethoscope back into his pocket. He reached for the
clipboard and flipped the page.
Just so you know, I m pretty sure Moby s not responsible.
Oh, no?
No. Most likely it s that Labrador I ve seen around the neighborhood. I think he s ol
d man Cason s, but I m not positive about that. It might be his son s dog. I know he s b
ack in town.
What makes you so sure it s not Moby?
He started making notes, and for a moment, she wasn t sure he d heard her.
He shrugged. Well, for one thing, he s been neutered.
There are moments when mental overload can render words impossible. All at onc
e, Gabby saw a mortifying montage of herself babbling and crying and finally sto
rming off in a huff. She did have a vague memory of him trying to tell her somet
hing, all of which served to make her feel queasy.
Neutered? she whispered.
Uh-huh. He looked up from the clipboard. Two years ago. My dad did it here in the
office.
Oh . . .
I tried to tell you that, too. But you left before I had a chance. I felt sort
of bad about it, so I stopped by on Sunday to tell you then, but you were out.
She said the only thing that came to mind. I was at the gym.
Yeah? Good for you.
It took some effort, but she uncrossed her arms. I guess I owe you an apology.
No hard feelings, he said again, but this time it made her feel even worse. But l
isten, I know you re in a rush, so let me tell you a bit about Molly, okay?
She nodded, feeling as if she d been placed in the corner by her teacher, still
thinking about her tirade on Saturday night. The fact that he was being gracious
about it somehow made it even worse.
The gestation period lasts nine weeks, so you ve got another two weeks. Her hips
are wide enough, so you don t have to worry about that, which was why I wanted you
to bring her in. Collies sometimes have small hips. Now, normally, there s nothin
g you need to do, but keep in mind that most likely she ll want a cool, dark place
to have her puppies, so you might want to put some old blankets down in the gar
age. You have a door from the kitchen, right?
She nodded again, feeling as if she were shrinking.
Just leave it open, and she ll probably start wandering in there. We call it nest
ing, and it s perfectly normal. Odds are she ll have the puppies when it s quiet. At n
ight, or while you re at work, but remember this is completely natural, so there s n
othing to worry about. The puppies will know how to wean right away, so you don t
need to be concerned about that, either. And you ll most likely throw out the blan
kets, so don t use anything fancy, okay?
She nodded for the third time, feeling ever smaller.
Other than that, there s not much more you need to know. If there are any problem
s, you can bring her to the office. If it s after hours, you know where I live.
She cleared her throat. Okay.
When she said nothing else, he smiled and began to move toward the door. That s i
t. You can bring her back home if you d like. But I m glad you brought her in. I did
n t think it was an infection, but I m happy I made sure.
Thanks, Gabby mumbled. And again, I m really sorry. . . .
He held up his hands to stop her. It s no problem. Really. You were upset, and Mo
by does wander the neighborhood. It was an honest mistake. I ll see you around, ok
ay? By the time he gave Molly a final pat, Gabby felt six inches tall.
Once Travis-Dr. Parker-left the exam room, she waited for a long moment to be
certain he was gone. Then slowly, painfully, she rose from her chair. She peeked
out the door and, after making sure the coast was clear, went to the receptioni
st s desk, where she quietly paid her bill.
By the time she got back to work, the only thing Gabby knew for certain was th
at as forgiving as he d been, she d never live down what she d done, and since there w
asn t a rock large enough for her to crawl under, it was in her best interest to f
ind a way to avoid him for a while. Not forever, of course. Something reasonable
. Like the next fifty years.
Four
Travis Parker stood by the window, watching as Gabby led Molly back to the car
. He was smiling to himself, amused by her expressions. Though he barely knew he
r, he d seen enough to conclude that she was one of those people whose expressions
were a window to their every feeling. It was a rare quality these days. He ofte
n felt that too many people lived their lives acting and pretending, wearing mas
ks and losing themselves in the process. Gabby, he felt certain, would never be
that way.
Pocketing his keys, he headed for his truck, with the promise that he d be back
from lunch in half an hour. He retrieved his cooler-he packed his lunch every mo
rning-and drove to his usual spot. A year ago he d purchased a plot of land overlo
oking Shackleford Banks at the end of Front Street, with the thought that one da
y he d build his dream home there. The only problem was that he wasn t quite sure wh
at that entailed. For the most part, he led a simple life and dreamed of throwin
g up a rustic little shack like the kind he d seen in the Florida Keys, something
with lots of character that appeared a hundred years old on the outside but was
surprisingly bright and roomy on the inside. He didn t need much space-a bedroom a
nd maybe an office in addition to the living area-but as soon as he d start the pr
ocess, he d reason that the lot was better suited for something more family-friend
ly. That rendered the image of his dream home fuzzier, since it no doubt include
d a future wife and kids, neither of which he was even close to imagining.
Sometimes, the way he and his sister had turned out struck him as strange, sin
ce she, too, was in no hurry to marry. Their parents had been married for almost
thirty-five years, and Travis could no more picture either of them single than
he could picture himself flapping his arms and zooming into the clouds. Sure, he d
heard the stories of how they d met on a church group camping trip while they wer
e in high school, how Mom had cut her finger while slicing a piece of pie for de
ssert, and how dad had clamped his hand over the wound like a surgical bandage t
o stem the bleeding. One touch and Bing, bang, boom, just like that, Dad would say
, I knew she was the one for me.
So far, there d never been a bing, bang, boom for Travis. Nothing even close, fo
r that matter. Sure, there was his high school girlfriend, Olivia; everyone at t
he school seemed to think they were perfect for each other. She lived across the
bridge in Morehead City these days, and every now and then he d run into her at W
al-Mart or Target. They d chat for a minute or so about nothing important and then
amicably go their separate ways.
There had been countless girlfriends since Olivia, of course. He wasn t clueless
when it came to women, after all. He found them attractive and interesting, but
more than that, he was genuinely fond of them. He was proud of the fact that he d
never had what could even remotely be considered a painful breakup for either h
im or one of his exes. The breakups were almost always mutual, petering out like
a soggy fuse on a firecracker as opposed to the big kaboom of fireworks overhea
d. He considered himself friends with all of his exes-Monica, his latest, includ
ed-and figured they d say the same thing about him. He wasn t right for them, and th
ey weren t right for him. He d watched three former girlfriends get married off to g
reat guys, and he d been invited to all three weddings. He seldom thought about fi
nding permanence or his soul mate, but in the rare times he did, he always ended
up imagining finding someone who shared the same active, outdoor passions he di
d. Life was for living, wasn t it? Sure, everyone had responsibilities, and he did
n t mind those. He enjoyed his work, earned a good living, owned a house, and paid
his bills on time, but he didn t want a life where those things constituted all t
here was. He wanted to experience life. No, change that. He needed to experience
life.
He d been that way for as long as he could remember. Growing up, Travis had been
organized and capable when it came to school, getting good grades with a minimu
m of fuss or anxiety, but, more often than not, just as happy with a B instead o
f an A. It drove his mother crazy- Imagine how well you could do if you applied yo
urself, she repeated every time a report card came home. But school didn t excite h
im the way riding his bike at breakneck speed or surfing in the Outer Banks did.
While other kids thought about sports in terms of baseball and soccer, he thoug
ht of floating on air on his motorbike as he soared off a dirt ramp or the rush
of energy he felt when he successfully landed it. He was an X Games kind of kid,
even before there was such a thing, and by thirty-two, he d pretty much done it a
ll.
In the distance, he could see wild horses congregating near the dunes of Shack
leford Banks, and as he watched them, he reached for his sandwich. Turkey on whe
at with mustard, an apple, and a bottle of water; he had the same thing every da
y, after the exact same breakfast of oatmeal, scrambled egg whites, and a banana
. As much as he craved the occasional adrenaline rush, his diet couldn t be more b
oring. His friends marveled at the rigidity of his self-control, but what he did
n t tell them was that it had more to do with his limited palate than discipline.
When he was ten, he d been forced to finish a plate of Thai noodles drenched in gi
nger, and he d vomited most of the night. Ever since then, the faintest whiff of g
inger would send him gagging to the bathroom, and his palate had never been the
same. He became timid about food in general, preferring plain and predictable to
anything with exotic flavor; then gradually, as he grew older, he cut out the j
unk. Now, after more than twenty years, he was too afraid to change.
As he enjoyed his sandwich-plain and predictable-he wondered at the direction
of his thoughts. It wasn t like him. He usually wasn t prone to deep reflection. (An
other cause of the inevitable soggy fuse, according to Maria, his girlfriend of
six years ago.) Usually he just went about his life, doing what needed to be don
e and figuring out ways to enjoy the rest of his time. That was one of the great
things about being single: A person could pretty much do what he wanted, whenev
er he wanted, and introspection was only an option.
It had to be Gabby, he thought, though for the life of him, he couldn t understa
nd why. He barely knew her, and he doubted whether he d even had a chance to meet
the real Gabby Holland yet. Oh, he d seen the angry one the other night and the me
a culpa one just a little while ago, but he had no idea how she behaved under or
dinary circumstances. He suspected that she had a good sense of humor, though on
closer reflection, he couldn t pin down the reason he thought so. And she was no
doubt intelligent, though he could have deduced that on the basis of her job. Bu
t other than that . . . he tried and failed to picture her on a date. Still, he
was glad she d come by, if only to give them a chance to start over as neighbors.
One thing he d learned was that bad neighbors could make a person miserable. Joe s n
eighbor was the kind of guy who burned leaves on the first gorgeous day of sprin
g and mowed his lawn first thing Saturday mornings, and the two of them had near
ly come to blows more than once after a long night with the baby. Common courtes
y, it sometimes seemed to Travis, was going the way of the dinosaurs, and the la
st thing he wanted was for Gabby to feel any reason to avoid him. Maybe he d invit
e her over the next time his friends came by. . . .
Yeah, he thought, I ll do that. The decision made, he gathered his cooler and st
arted back toward his truck. On tap that afternoon were the regular assortment o
f dogs and cats, but at three, someone was supposed to be bringing in a gecko. H
e liked treating geckos or any exotic pet; the idea that he knew what he was tal
king about, which he did, always impressed the owners. He enjoyed their awed exp
ressions: I wonder if he knows the exact anatomy and physiology of every creatur
e on earth. And he pretended that he did. But fact was a bit more prosaic. No, h
e of course didn t know the ins and outs of every creature on earth-who could?-but
infections were infections and pretty much treated the same way regardless of s
pecies; only the medication dose was different, and that he had to verify in a r
eference book he kept on his desk.
As he got in the car, he found himself thinking about Gabby and wondering whet
her she d ever gone surfing or snowboarding. It seemed unlikely, but at the same t
ime, he had the strange feeling that, unlike most of his exes, she would be up f
or either of those two things, given the opportunity. He wasn t sure why, and as h
e started the engine he tried to dismiss the notion, doing his best to convince
himself it didn t matter. Except for the fact that, somehow, it did.
Five
Over the next two weeks, Gabby became an expert in making a covert entry and e
xit, at least when it came to her house.
She had no other choice. What on earth could she say to Travis? She d made a foo
l of herself, and he d compounded the matter by being so forgiving, which obviousl
y meant that coming and going required a new set of rules, one in which avoidanc
e was Rule #1. Her only saving grace-the only positive thing to come out of the
whole experience-was that she d apologized in his office.
It was getting harder to keep it up, though. At first, all she d had to do was p
ark her car in the garage, but now that Molly was getting close to her due date,
Gabby had to start parking in the driveway so Molly could nest. Which meant tha
t Gabby thenceforth had to come and go when she was certain Travis wasn t around.
She d come down on the fifty-year limit, though; now, she figured a couple of mo
nths or maybe half a year would suffice. Whatever amount of time seemed long eno
ugh for him to forget, or at least diminish the memory of, the way she d acted. Sh
e knew that time had a funny way of dimming the edges of reality until only some
thing blurry remained, and when that happened, she d go back to a more normal rout
ine. She d start small-a wave here or there as she got in the car, maybe a wave fr
om her back deck if they happened to see each other-and they d go on from there. I
n time, she figured they d be fine-maybe they d even share a laugh someday at the wa
y they d met-but until then, she preferred to live like a spy.
She d had to learn Travis s schedule, of course. It wasn t hard-a quick peek at the
clock when he was about to pull out in the morning while she watched from her ki
tchen. Returning home from work was even easier; he was usually out on the boat
or the Jet Ski by the time she arrived, but on the downside, that made the eveni
ngs the worst problem of all. Because he was out there, she had to stay in here,
no matter how glorious the sunset, and unless she went over to Kevin s, she d find
herself studying the astronomy book, the one she d purchased in hopes of impressin
g Kevin while they did some stargazing. Which, unfortunately, hadn t happened yet.
She supposed she could have been more grown up about the whole thing, but she
had the funny feeling that if she came face-to-face with Travis, she d find hersel
f remembering instead of listening, and the last thing she wanted was to make an
even worse impression than she already had. Besides, she had other things on he
r mind.
Kevin, for one. Most evenings, he swung by for a little while, and he d even sta
yed over last weekend, after his customary round of golf, of course. Kevin adore
d golf. They d also gone out to three dinners and two movies and had spent part of
Sunday afternoon at the beach, and a couple of days ago, while sitting on the c
ouch, he d slipped off her shoes while they were sipping wine.
What are you doing?
I figured you d like your feet rubbed. I ll bet they re sore after spending all day s
tanding.
I should rinse them off first.
I don t care if they re clean. And besides, I like to look at your toes. You ve got c
ute toes.
You don t have a secret foot fetish, do you?
Not at all. Well, I m crazy about your feet, he said, beginning to tickle them, an
d she tugged her foot away, laughing. A moment later, they were kissing passiona
tely, and when he lay beside her afterward, he told her how much he loved her. B
y the way he was talking, she kind of got the impression that she should conside
r moving in with him.
Which was good. It was the closest he d come to talking about their future, but
. . .
But what? That s what it always came down to, wasn t it? Was living together a ste
p toward the future or just a way to continue the present? Did she really need h
im to propose? She thought about it. Well . . . yes. But not until he was ready.
Which led, of course, to questions that had begun to creep into her thoughts wh
enever they were together: When would he be ready? Would he ever be ready? And,
of course, Why wasn t he ready to marry her?
Was it wrong to want to get married instead of simply live with him? Lord know
s she wasn t even sure about that anymore. It s like some people grew up knowing the
y d be married by a certain age, and it happened just the way they planned; others
knew they wouldn t for a while and moved in with the ones they loved, and that wo
rked fine, too. Sometimes, she felt she was the only one without a clear plan; f
or her, marriage had always been a vague idea, something that would just . . . h
appen. And it would. Right?
Thinking about this stuff gave her a headache. What she really wanted to do wa
s sit outside on the deck with a glass of wine and forget everything for a while
. But Travis Parker was on his back deck, flipping through a magazine, and that
just wouldn t do. So she was stuck inside on a Thursday night again.
She wished Kevin weren t working late so they could do something together. He ha
d a late meeting with a dentist who was opening an office and thus needed all so
rts of insurance. That wasn t so bad-she knew he was dedicated to building the bus
iness-but he was heading off with his dad to Myrtle Beach for a convention first
thing in the morning, and she wouldn t have a chance to see him until next Wednes
day, which meant she d have to spend even more time cooped up like a chicken. Kevi
n s dad had started one of the largest insurance brokerages in eastern North Carol
ina, and Kevin was taking on more responsibility with every passing year at thei
r office in Morehead City while his dad edged closer to retirement. Sometimes sh
e wondered what that must have been like-having a career path already charted fr
om the time he could walk-but she supposed there were worse things, especially s
ince the business was successful. Despite the whiff of nepotism, it wasn t as if K
evin didn t earn his way; his dad spent fewer than twenty hours a week in the offi
ce these days, which usually left Kevin working closer to sixty. With almost thi
rty employees, management problems were endless, but Kevin had a knack for deali
ng with people. At least, that s what a few of them had told her at the company Ch
ristmas party both times she d gone.
Yes, she was proud of him, but it still left her stuck inside on nights like t
his, which seemed like a waste. Maybe she should just head over to Atlantic Beac
h, where she could drink a glass of wine and watch the sun go down. For a moment
, she considered doing just that. Then she decided against it. It was okay to be
alone at home, but the thought of drinking at the beach alone made her feel lik
e a loser. People would think she didn t have a single friend in the world, which
wasn t true. She had lots of friends. It just happened that none of them was withi
n a hundred miles of here, and the realization didn t make her feel much better.
If she brought the dog, though . . . now, that was different. That was a perfe
ctly ordinary thing to do, even healthy. It had taken a few days and most of the
painkillers she d had in her medicine cabinet, but the soreness of the first work
out had finally passed. She hadn t returned to the Body Pump class again-people in
there were obviously masochists-but she had started to keep a fairly regular ro
utine at the gym. For the last few days, anyway. She d gone on both Monday and Wed
nesday, and she was determined to make time to go tomorrow as well.
She got up from the couch and turned off the television. Molly wasn t around, an
d guessing she was in the garage, she headed that way. The door to the garage wa
s propped open, and when she walked in and turned on the light, the first thing
she noticed was the collection of wiggling, whining furballs surrounding her. Ga
bby called out to her; a moment later, however, she began to scream.
Travis had just gone into the kitchen to pull a chicken breast from the refrig
erator when he heard the sudden, frantic pounding on his door.
Dr. Parker? . . . Travis? . . . Are you in there?
It took only an instant to recognize the voice as Gabby s. When he opened the do
or, her face was pale and terrified.
You ve got to come. Gabby gasped. Molly s in trouble.
Travis reacted on instinct; as Gabby began racing back to her house, he retrie
ved a medical bag from behind the passenger seat in the truck, the one he used f
or the occasional livestock call that required him to treat animals on farms. Hi
s father had always stressed the importance of keeping it fully stocked with any
thing he might need, and Travis had taken the message to heart. By then, Gabby w
as almost at her door, and she left it open, disappearing into the house. Travis
followed a moment later and spotted her in the kitchen, near the open door that
led to the garage.
She s panting and vomiting, she said as he hurried to her side. And . . . something s
hanging out of her. Travis took in the scene instantly, recognizing the prolapse
d uterus and hoping he wasn t too late.
Let me wash my hands, he said quickly. He scrubbed his hands briskly at the kitc
hen sink, going on as he scrubbed: Is there any way you can get some more light i
n there? Like a lamp or something?
Aren t you going to bring her into the clinic?
Probably, he said, keeping his voice level. But not this instant. I want to try s
omething first. And I do need a light, okay? Can you do that for me?
Yeah, yeah . . . of course. She vanished from the kitchen, returning a moment la
ter with a lamp. Is she going to be okay?
I ll know in a couple of minutes how serious it is. Holding up his hands like a su
rgeon, he nodded toward the bag on the floor. Could you bring that in for me, too
? Just put the bag over there and find a place to plug in the lamp. As close to
Molly as you can get, okay?
Okay, she said, trying not to panic.
Travis approached the dog carefully as Gabby plugged in the light, noting with
some relief that Molly was conscious. He could hear her whimpering, which was n
ormal in a situation like this. Next, he focused on the tubular mass that protru
ded from her vulva and looked over at the puppies, fairly certain that whelping
had occurred within the last half hour, which was good, he thought. Less chance
of necrosis . . .
What now? she asked.
Just hold her and whisper to her. I need you to help keep her calm.
When Gabby was in place, Travis squatted next to the dog, listening as Gabby m
urmured and whispered to her, their faces close together. Molly s tongue lapped ou
t, another good sign. He gently checked the uterus, and Molly twitched slightly.
What s wrong with her?
It s a uterine prolapse. It means that part of the uterus has turned inside out,
and it s protruding. He felt the uterus, turning it gently to see if there were any
ruptures or necrotic areas. Were there any problems with the whelping?
I don t know, she said. I didn t even know it was happening. She s going to be okay, r
ght?
Focused on the uterus, he didn t answer. Reach into the bag, he said. There should
be some saline. And I ll need the jelly, too.
What are you going to do?
I need to clean the uterus, and then I m just going to manipulate it a bit. I wan
t to try to manually reduce it, and if we re lucky, it ll contract back in on its ow
n. If not, I ll have to bring her in for surgery. I d rather avoid that if at all po
ssible.
Gabby found the saline and the jelly and handed them over. Travis rinsed the u
terus, then rinsed it two more times before reaching for the lubricating jelly,
hoping it would work.
Gabby couldn t bear to watch, so she concentrated on Molly, her mouth close to M
olly s ear as she whispered over and over what a good dog she was. Travis stayed q
uiet, his hand moving rhythmically over the uterus.
She didn t know how long they were in the garage-it could have been ten minutes
or it could have been an hour-but finally, she saw Travis lean back, as if tryin
g to relieve the tension in his shoulders. It was then she noticed that his hand
s were free.
Is it over? she ventured. Is she all right?
Yes and no, he said. Her uterus is back in place, and it seemed to contract witho
ut any problems, but she needs to go to the clinic. She s going to need to take it
easy for a couple of days while she gets her strength back, and she ll need some
antibiotics and fluids. I ll have to do an X-ray as well. But if there are no furt
her complications, she should be good as new. What I m going to do now is back my
truck up to the garage. I ve got some old blankets she can lie on.
And it won t . . . fall back out?
It shouldn t. Like I said, it contracted normally.
What about the puppies?
We ll bring them. They need to be with their mama.
And that won t hurt her?
It shouldn t. But that s why she needs fluids. So the puppies can nurse.
Gabby felt her shoulders relax; she hadn t realized how tense they d become. For t
he first time, she smiled. I don t know how to thank you, she said.
You just did.
After cleaning up, Travis carefully loaded Molly into the truck while Gabby st
arted with the puppies. Once all six were settled, Travis repacked the bag and t
ossed it onto the front seat. He walked around the truck and opened the driver s-s
ide door.
I ll let you know how it goes, he said.
I m coming.
It would be better if she got some rest, and if you re in the room, that might no
t happen. She needs to recover. Don t worry-I ll take good care of her. I ll be with h
er all night. You have my word on that.
She hesitated. Are you sure?
She ll be fine. I promise.
She considered what he d said, then offered a tremulous smile. You know, in my li
ne of work, we re taught never to promise anything. We re told to say that we ll do ou
r best.
Would you feel better if I didn t promise?
No. But I still think I should come with you.
Don t you have to work tomorrow?
Yes. But so do you.
True, but this is my job. It s what I do. And besides, I have a cot. If you came,
you d have to sleep on the floor.
You mean you wouldn t give me the cot?
He climbed into the truck. I suppose I could if I had to, he said, grinning. But
I m concerned about what your boyfriend would think if you and I spent the night t
ogether.
How did you know I have a boyfriend?
He reached for the door. I didn t, he said, sounding faintly disappointed. Then he
smiled, recovering. Let me bring her in, okay? And call me tomorrow. I ll let you
know how it went.
Yeah, she relented. Okay.
Travis closed the door, and she heard the engine rattle to a start. He leaned
out the window. Don t worry, he said again. She s going to be fine.
He eased toward the road, then turned left. In the distance, he waved at her o
ut the window. Gabby waved in return, though she knew he couldn t see it, watching
the red lights fade as they rounded the corner.
After he left, Gabby wandered to the bedroom and stood in front of the bureau.
She d always known she d never be the type to stop traffic, but for the first time
in ages, she found herself staring into the mirror and wondering what someone be
sides Kevin thought when he saw her.
Despite her exhaustion and unruly hair, she didn t look as bad as she feared. Th
e thought pleased her, though she wasn t sure why. Unaccountably, she recalled the
disappointment on Travis s face when she d told him about her boyfriend, and she fl
ushed. It wasn t as if she felt any differently toward Kevin. . . .
She d certainly been wrong about Travis Parker, wrong about everything from the
beginning. He d been so steady during the emergency. It still amazed her, though s
he shouldn t have been surprised. It was his job, after all, she reminded herself.
With that, she decided to call Kevin. He was immediately sympathetic, promisin
g to be there within minutes.
How re you holding up? Kevin asked.
Gabby leaned into him. His arm felt good around her. Anxious, I guess.
He pulled her closer, and she could smell him, fresh and clean, as if he d showe
red right before coming over. His hair, unkempt and windblown, made him look lik
e a college student.
I m glad your neighbor was there, he said. Travis, right?
Yeah. She looked over. Do you know him?
Not really, he said. We do the insurance for the clinic, but that s one of the acco
unts my dad still handles.
I thought this was a small town and you knew everyone.
It is. But I grew up in Morehead City, and as a kid, I didn t hang out with anyon
e from Beaufort. Besides, I think he s a few years older than me. He was probably
off to college by the time I started high school.
She nodded. In the silence, her thoughts circled back to Travis, his serious e
xpression as he worked on Molly, the quiet assurance in his voice as he explaine
d what was wrong. In the silence, she felt a vague current of guilt, and she lea
ned in to nuzzle Kevin s neck. Kevin stroked her shoulder, his touch comforting in
its familiarity. I m glad you came over, she whispered. I really needed you here ton
ight.
He kissed her hair. Where else would I be?
I know, but you had that meeting, and you re leaving early tomorrow.
No big deal. It s just a convention. It ll take me ten minutes to pack, tops. I jus
t wish I could have gotten here sooner.
You probably would have been grossed out.
Probably. But I still feel bad.
Don t. There s no reason to.
He stroked her hair. Do you want me to postpone my trip? I m sure my dad would un
derstand if I stay around here tomorrow.
No, that s okay. I ve got to work anyway.
You sure?
Yeah, she said. But thanks for asking. That means a lot to me.
Six
After finding his son crashed on the cot and a dog in the recovery room, Max P
arker listened as Travis explained what had happened. Max filled two cups with c
offee and brought them both to the table.
Not bad for your first time, Max said. With his white hair and bushy white eyebr
ows, he was the picture of a well-liked small-town veterinarian.
Have you ever treated a dog for it?
Never, Max admitted. Treated a horse once, though. You know how rare it is. Molly
seems to be doing fine now. She sat up and wagged her tail when I came in this
morning. How late were you up with her?
Travis sipped the coffee with gratitude. Most of the night. I wanted to make su
re it didn t recur.
It usually doesn t, he said. It s a good thing you were there. Have you called the ow
ner yet?
No. But I will. He wiped his face. Man, I m exhausted.
Why don t you go get some sleep? I can handle things here, and I ll keep an eye on
Molly.
I don t want to put you out.
You re not, Max said with a grin. Don t you remember? You re not supposed to be here.
t s Friday.
A few minutes later, after checking in on Molly, Travis pulled into his drivew
ay and got out of the car. He stretched his arms overhead, then headed over to G
abby s place. As he crossed her driveway, he saw the newspaper poking out of the b
ox and, after a brief hesitation, pulled it out. On her porch a moment later, he
was just about to knock when he heard the sound of approaching footsteps and th
e door swung open. Gabby straightened, surprised to see him.
Oh, hey . . . , she said, letting go of the door. I was just thinking that I shou
ld call you.
Though barefoot, she was dressed in slacks and an off-white blouse, her hair f
astened loosely by an ivory clip. He noted again how attractive she was, but tod
ay it struck him that her appeal lay more in an unfeigned openness than conventi
onal good looks.
She just seemed so . . . real. Since I was on my way home, I thought I d let you
know in person. Molly s doing fine.
You re sure?
He nodded. I did an X-ray, and I didn t see any indication of internal bleeding.
Once she got some fluids in, she seemed to get her strength back. She could prob
ably come home later today, but I d like to keep her one more night, just to be sa
fe. Actually, my dad will watch her for a while. I was up most of the night, so
I m going to bed, but I ll check on her myself later.
Can I see her?
Sure, he said. You can see her anytime. Just remember that she might still be a l
ittle doped up, though, since I had to administer some sedatives so she d be calm
for the X-ray and to help with the pain. He paused. The puppies are doing well, to
o, by the way. They re cute as bugs.
She smiled, liking the gentle twang of his accent, surprised that she hadn t not
iced it before. I just want to thank you again, she said. I don t know how I can ever
repay you.
He waved it off. I was glad to help. He held out the newspaper. Which reminds me,
I grabbed this for you, too.
Thanks, she said, taking it.
For an awkward beat, they faced each other silently.
Would you like a cup of coffee? she offered. I just brewed a pot.
She felt a mixture of relief and disappointment when he shook his head.
No thanks. I d rather not be awake when I m trying to sleep.
She laughed. Funny.
I try, he said, and for an instant she pictured him leaning against a bar and of
fering the same response to an attractive woman, which left her with the vague f
eeling that he was flirting with her.
But listen, he went on, I know you re probably getting ready for work and I m bushed,
so I m going home to crash for a while. He turned to step off the porch.
Despite herself, Gabby crossed the threshold and called to him as he reached t
he yard. Before you go, could you tell me what time you think you ll be at the clin
ic? To check on Molly, I mean?
I m not sure. I guess it depends on how long I sleep.
Oh . . . okay, she said, feeling foolish and wishing she hadn t asked.
But how about this, he went on. You tell me what time you take lunch, and I ll meet
you at the clinic.
I didn t meanWhat time?
She swallowed. A quarter to one?
I ll be there, he promised. He took a couple of steps backward. And by the way, you
look fantastic in that outfit, he added.
What on earth just happened?
That pretty much summed up Gabby s mental state for the rest of the morning. It
didn t matter whether she was doing a well-baby check (twice), diagnosing ear infe
ctions (four times), giving a vaccination (once), or recommending an X-ray (once
); she felt herself operating on autopilot, only half-present, while another par
t was still back on the porch, wondering if Travis had actually been flirting wi
th her and whether maybe, just maybe, she d sort of liked it.
She wished for the umpteenth time that she had a friend in town to talk to abo
ut all this. There was nothing like having a close girlfriend to confide in, and
though there were nurses in the office, her status as a physician assistant see
med to set her apart. Frequently, she d hear the nurses talking and laughing, but
they tended to get quiet as soon as she approached. Which left her feeling as is
olated as she had been when she d first moved to town.
After finishing with her last patient (the child needed a referral to an ear,
nose, and throat specialist for a possible tonsillectomy), Gabby stuffed her ste
thoscope into the pocket of her lab coat and retreated to her office. It wasn t mu
ch; she had the sneaking suspicion that before her arrival it had been used as a
storeroom. There was no window, and the desk took up most of the room, but as l
ong as she kept the clutter under control, it was still nice to have a place to
call her own. There was a small, nearly empty filing cabinet in the corner, and
she retrieved her purse from the bottom drawer. Checking her watch, she saw that
she had a few minutes until she had to leave. She pulled up her chair and ran a
hand through her undisciplined curls.
She was definitely making too big a deal about it, she decided. People flirted
all the time. It was human nature. Besides, it probably didn t mean anything. Aft
er all they d gone through the night before, he d become something like a friend. .
. .
Her friend. Her first friend in a new town at the start of her new life. She l
iked the sound of that. What was wrong with having a friend? Nothing at all. She
smiled at the thought before it gave way to a frown.
Then again, maybe it wasn t such a good idea. Being friendly with a neighbor was
one thing, making friends with a flirty guy was something completely different.
Especially a good-looking flirty guy. Kevin wasn t normally the jealous type, but
she wasn t dumb enough to think he d be overjoyed at the thought of Gabby and Travi
s having coffee on the back deck a couple of times a week, either, which was exa
ctly the sort of thing friendly neighbors did. As innocent as the visit to the v
et might be-and it was going to be innocent, mind you-it had a vaguely unfaithfu
l feeling about it.
She hesitated. I m going crazy, she thought. I really am going crazy.
She d done nothing wrong. He hadn t, either. And nothing was going to come of thei
r little flirtation, even if they were neighbors. She and Kevin had been a coupl
e since their senior year at the University of North Carolina-they d met on a cold
, miserable evening when her hat had blown off after she d left Spanky s with her fr
iends. Kevin had darted onto Franklin Street and threaded between cars to retrie
ve it, and if sparks hadn t flown at that moment, there might have been an ember,
even if she wasn t fully aware of it.
At the time, the last thing she d wanted was anything as complicated as a relati
onship, for it felt as though there were enough complications in her life alread
y. Finals were looming, the rent was due, and she didn t know where she was going
to PA school. Though it seemed preposterous now, at the time it seemed like the
single most important decision she d ever faced. She d been accepted to the programs
at both MUSC in Charleston and Eastern Virginia in Norfolk, and her mother was
lobbying fiercely for Charleston: Your decision is simple, Gabrielle. You d only be
a couple of hours from home, and Charleston is far more cosmopolitan, dear. Gabb
y was leaning toward Charleston as well, although deep down she knew that Charle
ston was tempting for all the wrong reasons: the nightlife, the excitement of li
ving in a beautiful city, the culture, the lively social circuit. She reminded h
erself that she really wouldn t have time to enjoy any of those things. With the e
xception of a few key classes, PA students had the same curriculum as medical sc
hool students but had only two and a half years to complete the program, as oppo
sed to four. She d already heard horror stories of what to expect: that classes we
re taught and information passed on with all the delicacy of a fire hose opened
to maximum velocity. When she d visited both campuses, she d actually preferred the
program at Eastern Virginia; for whatever reason, it felt more comfortable, a pl
ace where she could focus on what she needed to do.
So which would it be?
She d been fretting about the choice that winter evening when her hat blew off a
nd Kevin had retrieved it. After thanking him, she promptly forgot all about him
until he spotted her from across the quad a few weeks later. Though she d forgott
en him, he remembered her. His easygoing manner contrasted sharply with that of
the many arrogant frat guys she d met up to that point, most of whom tended to dri
nk inordinate amounts and painted letters on their bare chests whenever the Tarh
eels played Duke. Conversation led to coffee, coffee led to dinner, and by the t
ime she tossed her cap in the air at graduation, she figured she was in love. By
then, she d made her decision about which school to attend, and with Kevin planni
ng to live in Morehead City, only a few hours to the south of where she d be for t
he next few years, the choice seemed almost predestined.
Kevin commuted to Norfolk to see her; she drove down to Morehead City to see h
im. He got to know her family, and she got to know his. They fought and made up,
broke up and reunited, and she d even played a few rounds of golf with him, altho
ugh she wasn t fond of the game; and through it all, he d remained the laid-back, ea
sygoing guy he always had been. His nature seemed to reflect his upbringing in a
small town, where-let s be honest-things were mighty slow most of the time. Slown
ess seemed ingrained in his personality. Where she would worry, he would shrug;
in her pessimistic moments, he remained unconcerned. That was why, she thought,
they got along so well. They balanced each other. They were good for each other.
There would be no contest if the choice came down to Kevin or Travis, not even
close.
Having reached clarity on the issue, she decided it didn t matter whether Travis
was flirting. He could flirt all he wanted; in the end, she knew exactly what s
he wanted in her life. She was sure of it.
Just as Travis had promised, Molly was better than Gabby had hoped. Her tail t
humped with enthusiasm, and despite the presence of her puppies-most of which we
re sleeping and resembled furry little balls-she got up without a struggle when
Gabby entered and trotted toward her before applying a few sloppy licks. Molly s n
ose was cold, and she wiggled and whined as she circled Gabby, not with her usua
l abandon, but enough to let Gabby know she was fine, and then sat beside Gabby.
I m so glad you re better, Gabby whispered, stroking her fur.
I am, too, Travis s voice echoed behind her from the doorway. She s a real trouper, a
nd she s got a wonderful disposition.
Gabby turned around and saw him leaning against the door.
I think I was wrong, he said, walking toward her, holding a Fuji apple. She could
probably go home tonight, if you want to pick her up after work. I m not saying y
ou have to. I d be happy to keep her here if you d be more comfortable with it. But
Molly s doing even better than I predicted. He squatted and lightly snapped his fin
gers, turning his attention away from Gabby. Aren t you a good girl, he said, using
what can best be described as an I love dogs and won t you come to me? kind of voice
. Surprising her, Molly left Gabby s side to go to him, where he took over the pet
ting and whispering, leaving Gabby feeling like an outsider.
And these little guys are doing great, too, he went on. If you do bring them home
, make sure you put together some sort of pen to keep them contained. Otherwise,
it can get kind of messy. It doesn t have to be fancy-just prop a few boards agai
nst some boxes-and make sure to line it with newspaper.
She barely heard him as, despite herself, she noted again how good-looking he
was. It annoyed her that she couldn t get past that every time she saw him. It was
as if his appearance constantly set off alarm bells in her, and for the life of
her, she didn t know why. He was tall and lean, but she d seen lots of guys like th
at. He smiled a lot, but that wasn t unusual. His teeth were almost too white-he w
as a definite bleacher, she decided- but even if she knew the color wasn t natural
, it still had an effect. He was fit, too, but guys like that could be found in
every gym in America-guys who worked out religiously, guys who never ate anythin
g but chicken breasts and oatmeal, guys who ran ten miles a day-and none of them
had ever had the same effect on her.
So what was it about him?
It would have been so much easier had he been ugly. Everything from their init
ial confrontation to her present discomfort would have been different, simply be
cause she wouldn t have felt so off-kilter. But that was done now, she resolved. S
he wouldn t be taken in anymore. Nosiree. Not this gal. She d finish up here, wave t
o him in a neighborly way in the future, and get back to living her life without
distraction.
You okay? he said, scrutinizing her. You seem distracted.
Just tired, she lied. She motioned to Molly. I guess she s taken a liking to you.
Oh yeah, he said. We ve been getting along great. I think it was the jerky treats I
gave her this morning. Jerky treats are the way to a dog s heart. That s what I tel
l all the FedEx and UPS guys when they ask what to do about dogs that dislike th
em.
I ll remember that, she said, quickly regaining composure.
When one of the puppies began to whine, Molly stood up and returned to the ope
n cage, the presence of Travis and Gabby suddenly extraneous. Travis stood and p
olished the apple on his jeans. So what do you think? he asked.
About what?
About Molly.
What about Molly?
He frowned. When he spoke, the words came out slowly. Do you want to take her h
ome tonight or not?
Oh, that, she said, flustered as a high school freshman meeting the varsity quar
terback. She felt like kicking herself but instead cleared her throat. I think I ll
take her home. If you re sure it won t hurt her.
She ll be fine, he assured her. She s young and healthy. As scary as it was, it could
have been a whole lot worse. Molly was a lucky dog.
Gabby crossed her arms. Yes, she was.
For the first time, she noticed that his T-shirt advertised a Key West hangout
, something about Dog s Saloon. He took a bite of his apple, then motioned toward
her with it. You know, I thought you d be more excited about the fact she s okay.
I am excited.
You don t seem excited.
What s that supposed to mean?
I don t know, he said. He took another bite of his apple. Based on the way you show
ed up at my door, I guess I figured that you d show a bit more emotion. Not only a
bout Molly, but the fact that I happened to be there to help.
And I ve already told you I appreciate it, she said. How many times do I have to th
ank you?
I don t know. How many do you think?
I wasn t the one who asked.
He lifted an eyebrow. Actually, you were.
Oh yeah, she thought. Well, fine, she said, throwing up her hands. Thank you agai
n. For all you did. She enunciated the words carefully, as if he were hard of hea
ring.
He laughed. Are you like this with your patients?
Like what?
So serious.
As a matter of fact, I m not.
How about with your friends?
No . . . She shook her head in confusion. What s this got to do with anything?
He took another bite of his apple, letting the question hang. I was just curiou
s, he finally said.
About what?
About whether it was your personality, or whether you re just serious around me.
If it s the latter, I m flattered.
She could feel the flame rising in her cheeks. I don t know what you re talking abo
ut.
He smirked. Okay.
She opened her mouth, wanting to say something witty and unexpected, something
to put him in his place, but before anything sprang to mind, he tossed the rema
ins of the apple in the garbage and turned to rinse his hands before going on.
Listen. I m glad you re here for another reason, too, he said over his shoulder. I m h
ving a little get-together tomorrow with friends, and I was hoping you d be able t
o swing by.
She blinked, unsure if she d heard him right. To your house?
That s the plan.
Like a date?
No, like a get-together. With friends. He turned off the faucet and began to dry
his hands. I m hooking up the parasail for the first time this year. It should be
a blast.
Are they mainly couples? The people going?
Except for my sister and me, all of them are married.
She shook her head. I don t think so. I have a boyfriend.
Great. Bring him along.
We ve been together almost four years.
Like I said, he s more than welcome to come.
She wondered if she d heard him right and stared at him, trying to tell if he wa
s serious. Really?
Of course. Why not?
Oh, well . . . he can t come anyway. He ll be out of town for a few days.
Then if you ve got nothing else to do, come on over.
I m not so sure that s a good idea.
Why not?
I m in love with him.
And?
And what?
And . . . you can be in love with him at my place. Like I said, it s going to be
fun. Temperature is supposed to get close to eighty. Have you ever been parasail
ing?
No. But that s not the point.
You don t think he d be happy if you came over.
Exactly.
So he s the kind of guy who wants to keep you pretty much locked up when he s away.
No, not at all.
Then he doesn t like you to have fun?
No!
He doesn t want you to meet new people?
Of course he does!
It s settled, then, he said. He headed toward the door before pausing. People will
start showing up around ten or eleven. All you need to bring is a bathing suit.
We ll have beer and wine and soda, but if you re particular about what you drink, yo
u might want to bring your own.
I just don t think . . .
He held up his hands. I ll tell you what. You re welcome to come if you d like. But n
o pressure, okay? He shrugged. I just figured it would give us a chance to get to
know each other.
She knew she should have said no. But instead, she swallowed through the sudde
n dryness in her throat. Maybe I will, she said.
Seven
Saturday morning started out well-as the sun came slanting through the blinds,
Gabby found her fuzzy pink slippers and shuffled to the kitchen to pour herself
a cup of coffee, looking forward to a leisurely morning. It was only afterward
that things started to go wrong. Even before she d taken her first sip, she rememb
ered that she needed to check on Molly and was happy to find that she was nearly
back to normal. The puppies seemed healthy, too, not that she had the slightest
idea of what, if anything, she was supposed to watch for. Aside from latching t
hemselves onto Molly like fuzzy barnacles, they tottered and toppled and whimper
ed and cried, all of which seemed like nature s way of making them adorable enough
so their mother wouldn t eat them. Not that Gabby was falling for it. Granted, th
ey weren t as ugly as they might have been, but that didn t make them nearly as beau
tiful as Molly, and she still worried that she might not find homes for them. An
d she had to find homes for them; that much was certain. The stench in the garag
e was enough to convince her of that.
It didn t just smell-the odor assailed her like the Force in a Star Wars movie.
As she began to gag, she vaguely remembered that Travis had suggested she build
a pen of some sort to keep the puppies contained. Who on God s green earth knew pu
ppies could poop so much? There were piles everywhere. The smell seemed to have
leached into the walls; even opening the garage door didn t help. She spent the ne
xt half hour holding her breath and trying to keep from getting sick as she clea
ned up the garage.
By the time she was finished, she had pretty much convinced herself that they
had been part of some sort of evil plan designed to ruin her weekend. Really. It
was the only reasonable explanation for the fact that the puppies seemed to fav
or the long, jagged crack in the garage floor, and their accuracy had been uncan
ny enough to force her to use a toothbrush to clean it. It was disgusting.
And Travis . . . let s not leave him out of it, either. It was as much his fault
as the puppies . Granted, he had mentioned in passing that she should keep them c
ontained, but he hadn t really made a point of it, had he? He hadn t explained what
would happen if she didn t listen to him, did he?
But he d known what would happen. She was sure of that. Sneaky.
And now that she considered it, she realized that it hadn t been the only thing
he d been sneaky about. The way he d pressed her to answer the whole Do I go out boat
ing with my neighbor who happens to be a flirty hunk? She decided she didn t want t
o go, if only because he d been so manipulative about getting her to agree. All th
ose ridiculous questions insinuating that Kevin kept her under lock and key. As
though she were Kevin s property or something! As if she had no mind of her own! A
nd here she was now, cleaning up a million mounds of poop. . . .
What a way to start the weekend. To top it off, her coffee was cold, her newsp
aper had been soaked by an errant sprinkler, and the water had gone frigid befor
e her shower was finished.
Great. Just great.
Where was the fun? she grumbled to herself as she threw on her clothes. Here i
t was, the weekend, and Kevin was nowhere to be found. Even when he was around,
their weekends weren t anything like the ones she d had when she d visited him during
her school breaks. Back then, it seemed as if every visit were fun, filled with
new experiences and people. Now he spent at least part of every weekend at the g
olf course.
She poured herself another cup of coffee. Granted, Kevin had always been the q
uiet type, and she knew he needed to unwind after a hard week at work. But she c
ouldn t deny that since she d moved here, their relationship had changed. Not that i
t was completely his fault, of course. She d played a role, too. She had wanted to
move in, settle in, so to speak. Which was exactly what had happened. So what w
as the problem?
The problem, she heard a little voice answer, was that it seemed as though the
re should be . . . more. She wasn t exactly sure what that entailed, other than th
at spontaneity seemed to be an integral part of it.
She shook her head, thinking she was making too much of it. Their relationship
was just going through some growing pains. Moving out onto her back deck, she s
aw that outside, it was one of those impossibly beautiful mornings. Perfect temp
erature, light breeze, not a cloud in the sky. In the distance, she watched a he
ron break from the marsh grass, gliding above sun-drenched water. As she stared
in that direction, she caught sight of Travis heading down to the dock, wearing
nothing but low-slung plaid Bermudas that stretched almost to his knees. From he
r vantage point, she could see the muscle striations in his arms and back as he
walked, and she took a step backward, toward the sliding glass door, hoping he w
ouldn t spot her. In the next instant, however, she heard him calling out to her.
Hey, Gabby! He waved, reminding her of a kid on the first day of summer vacation
. Can you believe how beautiful the day is already?
He started to jog toward her, and she stepped into the sun just as he pushed t
hrough the hedges. She took a deep breath.
Hey, Travis.
It s my favorite time of year. He opened his arms wide to take in the sky and tree
s. Not too hot, not too cold, and blue skies that stretch forever.
She smiled, refusing to eye his admittedly sexy hip muscles, which, she always
thought, were far and away the sexiest muscles on men.
How s Molly doing? he chattered. I assume she made it through the night okay.
Gabby cleared her throat. She s fine. Thanks.
And the puppies?
They seem okay, too. But they made quite a mess.
They ll do that. That s why it s a good idea to keep them in a smaller area.
He flashed those bleached teeth in a familiar grin, way too familiar, even if
he was the hunk-who-saved-her-dog.
She crossed her arms, reminding herself how sneaky he d been the day before. Yeah
, well, I didn t quite get to it yesterday.
Why not?
Because you distracted me, she thought. I guess I just forgot.
Your garage must smell to high heaven.
She shrugged without responding, not wanting to give him the satisfaction.
He didn t seem to notice her carefully choreographed response. Listen, it doesn t h
ave to be complicated. But pooping is all puppies do for the first couple of day
s. It s like the milk runs right through them. But you ve got the pen up now, right?
She tried her best to keep a poker face but obviously failed.
You don t? he asked.
Gabby shifted from one foot to the other. Not exactly, she admitted.
Why not?
Because you keep distracting me, she thought. I m not sure I need one.
Travis scratched at his neck. Do you like cleaning up after them?
It s not so bad, she mumbled.
You mean you re going to give them the run of your whole garage?
Why not? she said, knowing that the first thing she was going to do after this w
as to build the tiniest pen she could.
He stared at her in obvious bafflement. Just so you know, as your vet, I m going
to come right out and say that I don t think you ve made the right decision.
Thanks for your opinion, she snapped.
He continued to stare at her. All right, then. Suit yourself. You re going to com
e to my house around ten, right?
I don t think so.
Why not?
Because I don t think it s a good idea.
Why not?
Because.
I see, he said, sounding exactly like her mother.
Good.
Is something bothering you?
No.
Have I done something to upset you?
Yes, the little voice answered. You and your damn hip muscles. No.
Then what s the problem? he asked.
There s no problem.
Then what s up with the way you re acting?
I m not acting any way.
The teeth-baring smile was gone, as was all the friendliness he d shown earlier.
Yeah, you are. I drop a basket off to welcome you to the neighborhood, I save yo
ur dog and stay awake all night to make sure she s okay, I invite you over to have
some fun on my boat today-all this after you screamed at me for no reason, mind
you-and now you re treating me like I have the plague. Since you moved next door,
I ve tried to be nice, but every time I see you, you seem angry at me. I just wan
t to know why.
Why? she parroted.
Yeah, he said, his voice steady. Why.
Because, she repeated, knowing she sounded like a sulky fifth-grader. She just c
ouldn t think of anything else to say.
He studied her face closely. Because why?
It s none of your business.
He let her answer settle into the silence.
Whatever, he finally said. He turned on his heels, shaking his head as he walked
toward the steps. He was already on the grass when Gabby took a step forward.
Wait! she called out.
Travis slowed, took another couple of steps, then came to a halt. He turned to
face her. Yeah?
I m sorry, she offered.
Yeah? he said again. What are you sorry for?
She hesitated. I don t know what you mean.
I didn t expect that you would, he grunted. When she sensed him getting ready to t
urn again-a turn that Gabby knew would signal the end of cordial relations betwe
en them-she took a step forward, almost against her will.
I m sorry for all of it. To her ears, her own voice sounded strained and tinny. For
the way I ve been treating you. For the way I ve made you think I m not grateful for
the things you ve done.
And?
She felt herself shrink, something that seemed to happen only in his presence.
And, she said, her tone softening, I ve been wrong.
He paused, hand on hip. About what?
Gee, where should I start? the little voice answered. Maybe I haven t been wrong
. Maybe my intuition has been warning me about something I don t quite understand
but shouldn t be under-estimated. . . .
About you, she said, ignoring the little voice. And you re right. I haven t been trea
ting you the way I should, but to be honest, I d rather not go into the reasons wh
y. She forced a smile, one that wasn t reciprocated. Would it be possible for us to
start over?
He seemed to mull this over. I don t know.
Huh?
You heard me, he said. The last thing I need in my life is a crazy neighbor. I do
n t mean to hurt your feelings, but I learned a long time ago to call em like I see
em.
That s not fair.
No? He didn t bother to hide his skepticism. Actually, I think I m being more than fa
ir. But I ll tell you what-if you re willing to start over, I m willing to start over.
But only if you re certain you want that.
I am.
Okay, then, he said. He retraced his steps to the deck. Hi, he offered, holding ou
t his hand. My name is Travis Parker, and I want to welcome you to the neighborho
od.
She stared at his hand. After a moment, she took it and said, I m Gabby Holland.
It s a pleasure to meet you.
What do you do?
I m a physician assistant, she said, feeling slightly ridiculous. How about you?
I m a veterinarian, he said. Where are you from?
Savannah, Georgia, she answered. And you?
From here, he said. Born and raised.
Do you like it here?
What s not to like? Beautiful weather, zero traffic. He paused. And for the most pa
rt, nice neighbors, too.
I ve heard that, she said. In fact, I know the vet here in town might even make an
emergency house call now and then. Can t find that in the city.
No, I don t suppose you would. He motioned over his shoulder. Hey, by the way, my f
riends and I are heading out on the boat today. Would you like to join us?
She squinted up at him. I would, but I have to build a pen for the puppies my d
og, Molly, had two nights ago. I don t want you to have to wait for me.
Need some help? I ve got some extra planks of wood and some crates in the garage.
It won t take long.
She hesitated, then looked up with a smile. In that case, I d love to go.
Travis was as good as his word. He arrived-still half-naked, to her dismay-car
rying four long boards beneath his arms. After dropping those off, he jogged bac
k to his garage. He returned with the crates, along with a hammer and a handful
of nails.
Though he pretended not to notice the smell, she noticed that he put the pen t
ogether far faster than she would have imagined possible.
You should probably line this area with newspapers. Do you have enough?
When she nodded, he motioned toward his house again. I ve still got a few things
to take care of, so I ll see you in a little while, okay?
Gabby nodded again, feeling a roiling sensation in her stomach, something akin
to nervousness. Which was why, after she d watched him enter his house and had li
ned the pen, she found herself standing in the bedroom, evaluating the merits of
swimwear. More specifically, whether she should wear her bikini or her one-piec
e.
There were pros and cons to each. Normally, she would have worn her bikini. Sh
e was, after all, twenty-six and single, and even if she wasn t a supermodel, she
was honest enough to admit she liked the way she looked in a bikini. Kevin certa
inly did-if she even suggested that she wear a one-piece, Kevin would pout until
she changed her mind. On the other hand, Kevin wasn t around, she would be hangin
g out with a neighbor (guy!), and considering the size of her bikini, she might
as well be wearing a bra and panties, none of which would make her feel very com
fortable and all of which added up to the one-piece.
Still, her one-piece was sort of old and a little faded from chlorine and sun.
Her mother had purchased it for her a few years ago, for afternoons spent at th
e country club (God forbid she expose herself like a harlot!). It wasn t a particu
larly flattering cut, as far as one-pieces went. Instead of a high cut on her th
ighs, the suit was cut low on the sides, which made her legs look short and stum
py.
She didn t want her legs to look short and stumpy. On the other hand, did it rea
lly matter? Of course not, she thought, while simultaneously thinking, Of course
it did.
The one-piece, she decided. At the very least, she wouldn t give any of them the
wrong impression about her. And there were going to be kids on the boat, too. I
t was better to err on the conservative side than to be a bit too . . . exposed.
She reached for the one-piece, and all at once she could hear her mother tellin
g her that she d made the right decision.
Tossing it back on the bed, she reached for the bikini.
Eight
You invited the new neighbor over, huh? Stephanie asked. What s her name again?
Gabby, Travis answered, pulling the boat closer to the dock. She should be here a
ny minute. The rope tightened and then slackened as the boat was maneuvered into
place. They d just lowered it into the water and were tying it up to the dock to l
oad the coolers.
She s single, right?
Technically. But she has a boyfriend.
So? Stephanie grinned. When have you ever let that stop you?
Don t read anything into this. He s out of town and she had nothing to do, so being
the good neighbor, I invited her along.
Uh-huh. Stephanie nodded. Sounds just like you to do something honorable like tha
t.
I am honorable, he protested.
That s what I just said.
Travis finished tying the boat. But you didn t sound like you meant it.
I didn t? That s strange.
Yeah, yeah. Keep it up.
Travis grabbed the cooler and hopped in the boat.
Umm . . . you think she s attractive, don t you?
Travis put the cooler in place. I guess.
You guess?
What do you want me to say?
Nothing.
Travis looked at his sister. Why do I get the feeling that this is going to be
a long day?
I have no idea.
Do me a favor, okay? Go easy on her.
What do you mean?
You know what I mean. Just . . . let her get used to everyone before you start
in on her.
Stephanie cackled. You do realize who you re talking to, right?
I m just saying that she might not understand your humor.
I promise to be on my best behavior.
So . . . you ready to go skinny-dipping? Stephanie asked.
Gabby blinked, unsure she d heard her right. Excuse me?
A minute earlier, Stephanie had walked over wearing a long T-shirt and holding
a couple of beers. Handing one to Gabby, she d introduced herself as Travis s siste
r and led her to some chairs along the back deck while Travis finished up.
Oh, not right now. Stephanie waved. It usually takes a couple of beers before eve
ryone is loose enough to drop their drawers.
Skinny-dipping?
You did know that Travis is a nudist, right? She nodded toward the slip-and-slid
e Travis had set up earlier. After that, we generally go slip-and-sliding.
Though her head felt as though it were spinning, Gabby nodded almost impercept
ibly as she felt things click into place: the fact that Travis usually seemed on
ly half-dressed, his utter lack of discomfort at conversing with his chest bared
, an explanation for why he worked out so much.
Her thoughts were interrupted by the sound of Stephanie s laughter.
I was kidding! she hooted. Do you honestly think I d go skinny-dipping with my brot
her around? Ewww! That s gross!
Gabby felt a red-hot flush work its way up from her neck to her face. I knew yo
u were kidding.
Stephanie eyed Gabby over her beer. You did think I was serious! Oh, that s a hoo
t! But I m sorry. My brother warned me to take it easy on you. For whatever reason
, he thinks my humor takes some getting used to.
Gee, I wonder why. Really? Gabby said instead.
Yeah, but if you ask me, we re two peas in a pod. Where do you think I learned it
? Stephanie leaned back in her seat as she adjusted her sunglasses. Travis tells m
e you re a physician assistant?
Yeah. I work at the children s clinic.
How is it?
I enjoy it, she said, thinking it best not to mention her pervert boss or the oc
casionally overbearing parent. How about you?
I m a student, she said. She took a sip of beer. I m thinking of making it my career.
For the first time, Gabby laughed and felt herself begin to relax. Do you know
who else is coming?
Oh, probably the same old crew. Travis has these three friends he s known forever
, and I m sure they ll be here along with their wives and kids. Travis doesn t bring t
he parasail boat out too much anymore, which is why he keeps it docked at the ma
rina. Usually he uses the ski boat, because wakeboarding or skiing is a lot easi
er. Just get in the boat, lower the lift, and go. You can wakeboard or ski or sk
urf almost anywhere. But parasailing is great. Why do you think I m here? I should
be studying, and I actually ditched some lab work I was supposed to do this wee
kend. Have you ever been parasailing?
No.
You ll love it. And Travis knows what he s doing. That s how he earned extra spending
money while he was in college. Or, at least, that s what he claims. Actually, I m f
airly certain that everything he earned was used to buy the boat; they re manufact
ured by CWS exclusively for parasailing, and they re very expensive. And even thou
gh Joe, Matt, and Laird are his friends, they still insisted on getting paid whe
n they took the tourists out during their student days. I m pretty sure Travis nev
er earned a nickel of profit.
So he s quite the shrewd businessman, huh?
Stephanie laughed. Oh yeah. My brother. A budding Donald Trump, right? Actually
, he doesn t much care about money and never has. I mean, sure, he earns a living
and pays his own way, but anything left over goes to new boats or Jet Skis or tr
ips here and there. It seems like he s been everywhere. Europe, Central and South
America, Australia, Africa, Bali, China, Nepal . . .
Really?
You sound surprised.
I guess I am.
Why?
I m not sure. I guess it s because . . .
Because he seems like such a goof-off? Like everything s a party?
No!
You sure about that?
Well . . . Gabby trailed off, and Stephanie laughed again.
He s a goof-off, and a worldly young man . . . but underneath, he s really just a s
mall-town boy like the rest of them. Otherwise he wouldn t be living here, right?
Right, Gabby said, not sure whether an answer was even needed.
Anyway, you ll love it. You re not afraid of heights, are you?
No. I mean, I m not thrilled with them, but I m sure I ll manage.
It s no big deal. Just remember you have a parachute.
I ll keep that in mind.
In the distance, a car door slammed, and Stephanie sat up straighter.
Here come the Clampetts, Stephanie remarked. Or, if you prefer, the Brady Bunch.
Brace yourself. Our relaxing morning is about to end.
Gabby turned and spotted a rowdy group rounding the side of the house. Chatter
and shouts rang out as the children ran in front of the adults, moving in that
wobbly way that made them seem as if they were constantly on the verge of fallin
g.
Stephanie leaned closer. It s easy to distinguish them, believe it or not. Megan
and Joe are the ones with blond hair. Laird and Allison are the tall ones. And M
att and Liz are . . . less thin than the others.
The corners of Gabby s mouth curled up slightly. Less thin?
I didn t want to call them plump. But I was just trying to make it easy for you.
In theory, I d hate being introduced to a bunch of people and forgetting their nam
es a minute later.
In theory?
I don t forget names. It s kind of strange, but I never do.
What makes you think I d forget their names?
Stephanie shrugged. You re not me.
Gabby laughed again, liking her more by the minute. How about the kids?
Tina, Josie, and Ben. Ben s easy to figure out. Just remember that Josie has the
pigtails.
What if she s not in pigtails the next time I see her?
Stephanie grinned. Why? Do you think you ll be coming over regularly? What about
your boyfriend?
Gabby shook her head. No, you misunderstood what I meantI was teasing! My, you re touchy.
I m not sure I can keep them straight.
All right. Try these memory association tricks. For Tina, think of Tina Louise
from Gilligan s Island. Ginger? The movie star? She has red hair, too.
Gabby nodded.
Okay, for Josie, think of Josie and the Pussycats. And for Ben-who s kind of big
and square for his age, think of Big Ben, the giant clock in England.
Okaaay . . .
I m serious. This ll really help. Now, for Joe and Megan-the blonds, imagine blond
GI Joe fighting a megalodon-you know, one of those giant prehistoric sharks. Rea
lly picture it, okay?
Gabby nodded again.
For Laird and Allison, imagine a supertall allosaurus stuck in his lair. And fi
nally, for Matt and Liz . . . Stephanie paused. Oh, I know . . . imagine Elizabeth
Taylor lying on a porch mat, eating fried pork rinds. Are you really picturing
it?
It took Gabby a minute-and Stephanie had to repeat the descriptions more than
once-but when she was ready, she quizzed Gabby on the names. Amazingly, the name
s stuck, and Gabby couldn t hide her surprise.
Neat, huh?
Very, Gabby admitted.
It s one of the areas I study at UNC.
Do you do this with everyone you meet?
Not specifically. Or rather, not consciously. For me, it comes almost naturally
. But now you ll really impress them.
Do I need to impress them?
No. But it s fun to impress people anyway. Stephanie shrugged. Think about what I j
ust did for you. But I ve got one more question.
Go ahead.
What s my name?
I know your name.
What is it, then?
It s . . . Gabby s mouth opened soundlessly while her mind froze.
Stephanie. Just Stephanie.
What? No memory tricks?
No. That one, you ll have to remember. She rose from her seat. Come on, now that yo
u know their names, let me go ahead and introduce you to them. And pretend you d
on t already know who they are, so that way you can impress them, too.
Introductions were made to Megan, Allison, and Liz while they watched the kids
chasing one another; Joe, Laird, and Matt, meanwhile, had strolled down to the
dock, loaded up with towels and coolers to greet Travis.
Stephanie hugged each of them, and the conversation turned to her progress at
school. Amazingly, the memory tricks continued to work. Gabby wondered whether s
he should try it with some patients before she remembered she could read their n
ames on the charts beforehand.
With some of Kevin s co-workers, though . . .
Hey! Y all ready? Travis called out. We re good to go, here.
Gabby trailed a step behind the group, adjusting the T-shirt she d worn over her
bikini. In the end, she d decided that, depending on what the other women wore, s
he could either take off her shirt or shorts-or maybe neither-and convince herse
lf she hadn t been listening to her mother.
The men were already in the boat when they got to the dock. The kids were dres
sed in life jackets and were handed to Joe; Laird held out his hand to help the
women into the boat. Gabby stepped in, concentrating on keeping her balance amid
the rocking, surprised at the size of the boat. It was longer than Travis s ski b
oat by a good five feet, with bench seats that ran along both sides, which was w
here most of the kids and adults seemed to congregate. Stephanie and Allison (th
e supertall allosaurus) had made themselves comfortable at the front of the boat
. At the . . . bow? The stern? . . . Gabby wondered, then shook her head. Whatev
er. At the back of the boat was a large platform and crank, along with Travis, w
ho stood behind the wheel. (Blond, GI) Joe was untying the line that held the bo
at in place, while Laird (lair) rolled it up. A moment later, Joe moved to a spo
t near Travis, while Laird approached Josie (and the Pussycats).
Gabby shook her head, thinking it amazing.
Sit by me, Stephanie commanded, patting a spot beside her.
Gabby sat, and from the corner of her eye, she saw Travis grab a baseball hat
he had tucked into a corner compartment. The cap, which she always believed look
ed goofy on grown men, somehow suited his carefree demeanor.
Everyone ready? he called.
He didn t wait for an answer, and the boat rumbled forward, working through the
gentle swell. They reached the mouth of the creek and turned south, into the wat
ers of Back Sound. Shackleford Banks loomed ahead, grass threaded along the dune
s.
Gabby leaned toward Stephanie. Where are we going?
Most likely Cape Lookout. Unless the sound is relatively clear of boats, we ll pr
obably make for the inlet, then out into Onslow Bay. Afterward, we ll either picni
c on the boat, on Shackleford Banks, or at Cape Lookout. Kind of depends on wher
e we end up and what everyone s in the mood for. A lot of it depends on the kids.
Hold on for a second. . . . She turned toward Travis. Hey, Trav! Can I drive?
He raised his head. Since when do you want to drive?
Now. It s been a while.
Later.
I think I should drive.
Why?
Stephanie shook her head, as if marveling at the stupidity of men. She rose fr
om her spot and whipped off her T-shirt without a shred of self-consciousness. I ll
be back in a little while, okay? I have to talk to my idiot brother.
As Stephanie made her way toward the rear of the boat, Allison nodded toward h
er.
Don t let her scare you. She and Travis always talk to each other that way.
I take it they re close.
They re best friends, even if both would deny it. Travis would probably say that
Laird was his best friend. Or Joe or Matt. Anyone but Stephanie. But I know bett
er.
Laird s your husband, right? The one holding Josie?
Allison couldn t hide her surprise. You remembered? You just met us for a second.
I m good with names.
You must be. You know everyone already?
Uh-huh. Gabby rattled off each of the passengers names, feeling smug.
Wow. You re just like Stephanie. No wonder you two hit it off.
She s great.
Sure, once you get to know her. But she takes a little getting used to. She watc
hed Stephanie lecturing Travis, one hand on the boat to steady herself, the othe
r hand gesturing.
How did you and Travis meet? Stephanie mentioned you live in the neighborhood.
We live next door to each other, actually.
And?
And . . . well, it s kind of a long story. But to make it short, my dog, Molly, h
ad some trouble when she had her puppies, and Travis was kind enough to come ove
r and treat her. After that, he invited me to come.
He s got a way with animals. Kids, too.
How long have you known him?
A long time. Laird and I met in college, and Laird introduced me to him. They ve
been friends since they were kids. Actually, he was the best man at our wedding.
And speak of the devil . . . Hey, Travis.
Hey, he said. Should be fun today, huh? Behind him, Stephanie was perched behind t
he wheel, pretending not to watch them.
Hopefully it won t get too windy.
Allison looked around. I don t think it will.
Why? Gabby pressed. What happens if it s windy?
Nothing good when you re parasailing, Travis answered. Basically, the chute could c
ollapse in places, the lines could get tangled, and that s the last thing you want
in a parachute.
Gabby had an image of herself spinning out of control as she rushed toward the
water.
Don t worry, Travis reassured her. If I even suspect a problem, no one goes up.
I hope not, Allison chimed in. But I d like to volunteer Laird to be the first.
Why?
Because he was supposed to paint Josie s room this week-he promised me over and o
ver-but is it painted? Of course not. It ll serve him right.
He ll have to stand in line. Megan already volunteered Joe to go first. Something
about not spending enough time with the family after work.
Listening to their familiar banter, Gabby felt like a spectator. She wished th
at Stephanie hadn t left her side; oddly, she realized, Stephanie already felt lik
e the closest thing she had to a friend in Beaufort.
Hold on! Stephanie shouted, rotating the wheel.
Travis instinctively grabbed the side of the boat as it hit a large wake and t
he bow rose and fell with a thud. Allison s attention was diverted to the kids, an
d she rushed toward Josie, who d fallen and was already beginning to cry. Laird pu
lled her to her feet with one arm.
You were supposed to be holding her! Allison reproached him while reaching for J
osie. Come here, baby. Mommy s got you. . . .
I was holding her! Laird protested. Maybe if Dale Earnhardt here was watching whe
re she was going . . .
Don t bring me into this, Stephanie said, tossing her head. I said to hold on, but
I guess you didn t listen. It s not like I can control the swells out here.
But you could go a little slower. . . .
Travis shook his head and took a seat beside Gabby.
Is it always like this? she asked.
Pretty much, he said. At least since the kids have been around. Rest assured that
each of the kids will have a few tearful moments today. But that s what keeps it
interesting. He leaned back, planting his feet wide. How d you like my sister?
With the sun behind him, his features were difficult to discern. I like her. Sh
e s . . . unique.
She seems taken with you, too. If she didn t like you, believe me-she would have
let me know. As smart as she is, she doesn t always know when to keep her opinions
to herself. If you ask me, I think she was secretly adopted by my parents.
I don t think so. If you let your hair grow a little longer, you two could pass f
or sisters.
He laughed. You sound like her now.
I guess she rubbed off on me.
Did you get a chance to meet everyone else?
Briefly. I visited with Allison for a bit, but that s all.
They re the nicest bunch of people you ll ever meet, Travis said. More like family th
an friends.
She studied Travis as he pulled the baseball cap from his head, suddenly grasp
ing what had happened. Stephanie sent you back here to talk to me, didn t she.
Yeah, he admitted. She reminded me that you were my guest and that I d be rude if I
didn t make sure you were comfortable.
I m fine. She waved a hand. If you want to go drive the boat again, feel free. I m pe
rfectly happy enjoying the view.
Have you ever been over to Cape Lookout? Travis asked.
No.
It s a national park, and there s a cove that s great for little kids because the wav
es don t break there. And on the far side-the Atlantic side-there s a white-sand bea
ch that s unspoiled, which is almost impossible to find anymore.
When he was finished, Gabby watched as he turned his attention to Beaufort. Th
e profile of the town was visible; just beyond the marina where the masts of sai
lboats pointed toward the sky like upraised fingers, she could see the restauran
ts lining the waterfront. In every direction, there were boats and Jet Skis zipp
ing past, leaving whitewashed curls of water behind them. Despite herself, she w
as conscious of the gentle way his body leaned against hers as the boat glided t
hrough the water.
It s a pretty town, she finally said.
I ve always loved it, he agreed. Growing up, I used to dream about moving to a big
city, but in the end, this is home for me.
They turned toward the inlet. Behind them, Beaufort grew smaller; up ahead, th
e waters of Onslow Bay embraced the Atlantic. A solitary cloud drifted overhead,
puffy and full, as if molded from snow. The gentle blue sky spread over water s
peckled with golden prisms of sunlight. In time, the hectic activity of Back Sou
nd gave way to a sense of isolation, broken only by the sight of an occasional b
oat pulling into the shallows of Shackleford Banks. The three couples at the fro
nt of the boat were as transfixed by the view as she was, and even the kids seem
ed to have quieted. They sat contentedly on laps, their bodies relaxed, as if th
ey were ready for a nap. Gabby could feel the wind whipping through her hair and
the balm of the summer sun.
Hey, Trav, Stephanie called out, is this okay?
Travis broke from his reverie and glanced around.
Let s go a bit farther. I want to make sure we have enough room. We ve got a rookie
on board.
Stephanie nodded, and the boat accelerated again.
Gabby leaned toward him. How does this work, by the way?
It s easy, he said. First, I fill the parachute and get it ready to accept the harn
esses by using that bar over there. He pointed toward the corner of the boat. Then
, you and your partner put the harnesses on, I clip those to the long bar, and y
ou take a seat on the platform. I start the crank and you lift off. It takes a c
ouple of minutes to reach the right height, and then . . . well, you float aroun
d. You get a great view of Beaufort and the lighthouse, and-because the weather s
been so clear-you might get to see some dolphins, porpoises, rays, sharks, even
turtles. I ve seen whales on occasion. We might slow the boat, let you dunk your f
eet, and then go up again. It s a blast.
Sharks?
Of course. It s the ocean.
Do they bite?
Some do. Bull sharks can be pretty nasty.
Then I d rather not be dunked, thank you very much.
There s nothing to be afraid of. They won t bother you.
Easy for you to say.
I ve never, in all the years I ve done this, heard of anyone getting bitten by a sh
ark while parasailing. You re in the water for maybe two or three seconds at the m
ost. And usually sharks feed at dusk.
I don t know . . .
How about if I m with you? Then would you try it? You shouldn t miss it.
She hesitated, then gave a quick nod. I ll think about it, she offered. I m not promi
sing anything.
Fair enough.
Of course, you re assuming that you and I will go up together.
He winked as he flashed that smile of his. Of course.
Gabby tried to ignore the leaping sensation in her stomach. Instead, she reach
ed for her bag and pulled out some lotion. After dabbing a bit on her hand, she
began nervously to apply some to her face, trying to regain some distance.
Stephanie tells me you re a world traveler.
I ve traveled a bit.
She made it sound like more than that. Like you ve pretty much been everywhere.
He shook his head. I wish. Believe me, there are lots of places I haven t seen.
What s been your favorite place?
He took a while to answer, a wistful expression on his face. I don t know.
Well . . . where would you suggest I go?
It s not like that, he said.
What do you mean?
Traveling has less to do with seeing things than experiencing them. . . . He sur
veyed the water, gathering his thoughts. Let me put it this way. When I graduated
from college, I wasn t sure what I wanted to do, so I just decided to take a year
to see the world. I had a bit of money saved-not as much as I thought I neededbut I packed some gear and my bike and caught a flight to Europe. I spent the fi
rst three months there just . . . doing whatever I felt like, and it rarely had
anything to do with what I was supposed to see. I didn t even have a planned itine
rary. Don t get me wrong-I saw a lot. But when I think back on those months, I mos
tly remember the friends I made along the way and the good times we spent togeth
er. Like in Italy, I saw the Colosseum in Rome and the canals in Venice, but wha
t I really remember was a weekend I spent in Bari-this out-of-the-way city in th
e southern part of the country that you ve probably never heard of-with some Itali
an students I happened to meet. They took me to this little bar where a local ba
nd was playing, and even though most of them didn t speak a word of English and my
Italian was limited to menu items, we ended up laughing all night long. After t
hat, they showed me around Lecce and Matera, and little by little, we became goo
d friends. Same type of thing in France and Norway and Germany. I stayed in host
els when I had to, but most of the time I d just show up in a city and somehow mee
t someone who would offer to let me stay with them for a little while. I d find od
d jobs to pick up extra spending money, and when I was ready for someplace new,
I d just take off. At first, I thought it was easy because Europe and America are
a lot alike. But the same thing happened when I went to Syria and Ethiopia and S
outh Africa and Japan and China. At times, it almost felt like I was destined to
take the trip, like all the people I met had somehow been waiting for me. But .
. .
He paused, looking directly at her.
But I m different now than I was then. Just like I was different at the end of th
e trip than I d been at the beginning. And I ll be different tomorrow than I am toda
y. And what that means is that I can never replicate that trip. Even if I went t
o the same places and met the same people, it wouldn t be the same. My experience
wouldn t be the same. To me, that s what traveling should be about. Meeting people,
learning to not only appreciate a different culture, but really enjoy it like a
local, following whatever impulse strikes you. So how could I recommend a trip t
o someone else, if I don t even know what to expect? My advice would be to make a
list of places on some index cards, shuffle them, and pick any five at random. T
hen just . . . go and see what happens. If you have the right mind-set, it doesn t
matter where you end up or how much money you brought. It ll be something you ll re
member forever.
Gabby was silent as she digested this. Wow, she finally said.
What?
You make it sound so . . . romantic.
In the ensuing quiet, Stephanie began to slow the boat and Travis sat up strai
ghter. When his sister glanced at him, he nodded and stood up. Stephanie lowered
the throttle, allowing the boat to slow even further.
We re ready, he said, and moved to a storage box. Pulling out the parachute, he as
ked, Are you up for a new experience?
Gabby swallowed. I can t wait.
Nine
Once the parachute was filled and harnesses strapped on, Joe and Megan lifted
off first, followed by Allison and Laird, then Matt and Liz. One by one, the cou
ples sat on the platform and were lifted into the air, the tow rope unwinding un
til they were a hundred feet up. From Gabby s spot on the boat, they looked small
and inconsequential as they drifted over the water. Travis, who d taken the wheel
from Stephanie, kept the boat at a steady speed, making large, wide turns, then
finally brought the boat to a gradual halt, allowing the riders to drift toward
the sea. Just as their feet grazed the water, he d gun the throttle, and the chute
would rush skyward like a kite being pulled by a boy running in the park.
Everyone was chattering as they reached the platform, talking about the fish o
r dolphins they d seen, but Gabby nonetheless felt herself growing nervous as her
turn approached. Stephanie, splayed out in her bikini, was working on her tan an
d nursing a beer in the front of the boat. She raised the beer in salute.
Here s getting to know you, kid.
Travis tossed aside his baseball cap. C mon, he said to Gabby, I ll help you with you
r harness.
After stepping off the platform, Liz handed over the life preserver.
It s so much fun, she said. You re going to love it.
Travis led Gabby to the platform. After hopping up, he bent over, offering a h
and. She could feel the warmth in it as he helped her up. The harness lay crumpl
ed, and he pointed toward two open loops.
Step in those and pull it up. I ll tighten it for you.
She held her body steady against the tugs of the canvas straps. That s it?
Almost. When you sit on the platform, keep the wide strap under your thighs. Yo
u don t want it under your . . . backside, because that doesn t support your weight
as well. And you might want to take off your shirt, unless you don t mind getting
it wet.
She slipped off her shirt, trying not to feel nervous.
If Travis noticed her self-consciousness, he gave no sign. Instead, he hooked
up the straps of her harness to the bar, then his own, then motioned for her to
sit.
It s under your thighs, right? Travis asked. When she nodded, he smiled. Just relax
and enjoy, okay?
A second later, Joe pushed the throttle, the chute filled, and Gabby and Travi
s were lifted from the deck. In the boat, she felt everyone s eyes on them as they
rose diagonally toward the sky. Gabby gripped the canvas straps so hard that he
r knuckles turned white while the boat grew smaller. In time, the tow rope to th
e boat captured her attention like a hypnotic decoy. It quickly felt as if she w
ere a whole lot higher than anyone else had been, and she was about to say somet
hing when she felt Travis touch her shoulder.
Look over there! he said, pointing. There s a ray! Can you see it?
She saw it, black and sleek, moving beneath the surface like a slow-motion but
terfly.
And a pod of dolphins! Over there! Near the banks!
As she marveled at the sight, her nervousness started to subside. Instead, she
began to soak in the view of everything below-the town, the families sprawled o
n the beaches, the boats, the water. As she relaxed, she found herself thinking
that she could probably spend an hour up here without ever growing tired of it.
It was extraordinary to drift along at this elevation, coasting effortlessly on
a wind current, as if she were a bird. Despite the heat, the breeze kept her coo
l, and as she rocked her feet back and forth, she felt the harness sway.
Are you willing to be dipped? he asked. I promise it ll be fun.
Let s do it, she agreed. To her ears, her voice sounded strangely confident.
Travis engaged Joe in a quick series of hand signals, and beneath her, the whi
ne of the boat suddenly diminished. The parachute began to descend. Staring at t
he rapidly approaching water, she scanned the surface to make sure nothing was l
urking below.
The parachute dipped lower and lower, and though she lifted her legs, she felt
cold water splash on her lower body. Just when she thought she was going to hav
e to start treading water, the boat accelerated and they shot skyward again. Gab
by felt adrenaline surge through her body and didn t bother trying to hide her gri
n.
Travis nudged her. See? It wasn t bad at all.
Can we do that again? she asked.
Travis and Gabby rode for another quarter hour, dipping two or three more time
s; once they were brought back to the boat, each couple rode once more. By then,
the sun was high in the sky and the kids were getting fussy. Travis steered the
boat toward the cove at Cape Lookout. The water grew shallow, and Travis stoppe
d the boat; Joe tossed the anchor overboard, removed his shirt, and followed the
anchor into the water. The water was waist-deep, and with practiced ease, Matt
handed him a cooler. Matt took off his shirt and jumped in; Joe handed him a coo
ler, then followed him into the water while Travis took his place. When Travis j
umped in, he carried a small, portable grill and bag of charcoal briquettes. Sim
ultaneously, the mothers hopped in the water and took hold of the kids. In minut
es, only Stephanie and Gabby remained on board. Gabby stood in the back of the b
oat, thinking she should have helped, while Stephanie, seemingly oblivious to th
e commotion, lay sprawled on the seats at the front of the boat, continuing to c
ollect the sun.
I m on vacation, so I feel no need to volunteer my services, Stephanie announced,
her body as still as the boat itself. And they re so good at it, I feel no guilt ab
out being a slacker.
You re not a slacker.
Of course I am. Everyone should be a slacker now and then. As Confucius once sa
id, He who does nothing is the one who does nothing.
Gabby pondered the words, then furrowed her brow. Did Confucius really say that
?
Sunglasses in place, Stephanie managed the tiniest of shrugs. No, but who cares
? The point is, they had it handled, and most likely they found some sort of sel
f-satisfaction in their industriousness. Who am I to deprive them of that?
Gabby put her hands on her hips. Or maybe you just wanted to be lazy.
Stephanie grinned. Like Jesus said, Blessed are the lazy who lie in boats, for t
hey shall inherit a suntan.
Jesus didn t say that.
True, Stephanie agreed, sitting up. She removed her glasses, stared through them
, then wiped them on a towel. But again, who cares? She squinted up at Gabby. Did y
ou really want to carry coolers or tents all the way to the beach? Trust me, the
experience is overrated. After adjusting her top, she rose from her spot. Okay, t
he coast is clear. We re good to go. She slung her beach bag over her shoulder. You
gotta know when to be lazy. Done correctly, it s an art form that benefits everyon
e.
Gabby hesitated. I don t know why, but I think I like the way you think.
Stephanie laughed. Of course you do, she said. It s human nature to be lazy. But it s
good to know I m not the only one who understands that essential truth.
As soon as Gabby started to deny it, Stephanie jumped overboard, the splash ri
sing to the lip of the boat. C mon, she said, not letting Gabby finish, I m just kiddin
g. And by the way, don t think twice about anything you did or didn t do. Like I sai
d, these people draw meaning from doing these little things. It makes them feel
manly and motherly, which is just the way the world should work. As single women
, all we have to do is make sure to enjoy it.
Setting up the camp-like getting off and unloading the boat-was informally rit
ualized, with everyone apparently knowing exactly what to do. A pop-up tent was
set in place, blankets spread, and the charcoal lit. In keeping with her inactiv
ity on the boat, Stephanie simply grabbed a beer and a towel, picked a spot, and
resumed sunbathing. Gabby, unsure of what else to do, spread her towel and did
exactly the same thing. She felt the effects of the sun almost immediately and l
ay there trying to ignore the fact that everyone else-aside from Stephanie-seeme
d to be doing something.
You need lotion, Stephanie instructed her. Without raising her head, she pointed
to the bag she d carried with her. Grab the tube with fifty SPF. With that pale sk
in of yours, you ll be a lobster in half an hour if you don t. It s got zinc in it.
Gabby reached for Stephanie s bag. She took a few moments to spread the lotion;
the sun did have a terrible way of punishing her if she missed a spot. Unlike he
r sisters or her mother, she d taken after her Irish-skinned father. It was one of
the middling curses of her life.
When she was ready, she lay down on her towel, still feeling guilty about the
fact that she wasn t doing anything to help set up or get the lunch ready to go.
How was it with Travis?
Fine, Gabby said.
Just to remind you, he s my brother, you know.
Gabby turned her head to shoot Stephanie a questioning look.
Hey, said Stephanie, I was only reminding you so that you d realize how well I know
him.
What does that matter?
I think he likes you.
And I think you believe we re still in seventh grade.
What? You don t care?
No.
Because you have a boyfriend?
Among other reasons.
Stephanie laughed. Oh, that s good. If I didn t know you, I might have even believe
d you.
You don t know me!
Oh . . . I know you. Believe it or not, I know exactly who you are.
Oh yeah? Where am I from?
I don t know.
Tell me about my family.
I can t.
Then you really don t know me, do you?
After a moment, Stephanie rolled over to face her. Yes, she said, I do. She couldn t
hide the challenge in her tone. Okay, how about this? You re a good girl and alway
s have been, but deep down, you think there s more to life than always following t
he rules, and there s a part of you that craves the unknown. If you re honest with y
ourself, Travis is part of that. You re selective when it comes to sex, but once y
ou commit to someone, the standards you would normally hold yourself to go out t
he window. You think you ll marry your boyfriend, but can t help but wonder why you
don t have a ring on your finger yet. You love your family, but you wanted to make
your own decisions about who you become, which is why you live here. Even so, y
ou worry your choices will earn your family s disapproval. How am I doing so far?
As she d spoken, Gabby had grown pale. Interpreting a direct hit, Stephanie prop
ped herself on an elbow. You want me to go on?
No, Gabby said.
I was right, wasn t I?
Gabby exhaled sharply. Not about everything.
No?
No.
Where was I wrong?
Instead of answering, Gabby shook her head and rolled back onto her towel. I do
n t want to talk about it.
Gabby expected Stephanie to persist, but instead, Stephanie simply shrugged an
d lay back on her towel, as if she d never said anything at all.
Gabby could hear the sounds of children frolicking in the surf and distant, in
distinguishable strains of conversation. Her head spun at Stephanie s assessment;
it was as if the woman had known her all her life and were privy to her darkest
secrets.
By the way, in case you re freaking out, I should probably let you know I m psychic
, Stephanie remarked. Weird, but true. Came from my grandmother, as far as I could
tell. The woman was famous for predicting the weather.
Gabby sat up as a wave of relief washed over her, even though she knew the con
cept was preposterous. Really?
Stephanie laughed again. No, of course not! My grandmother watched Let s Make a D
eal for years and never once beat the contestants. But be honest. I was right on
the money, wasn t I?
Gabby s thoughts went full circle once more, leaving her almost dizzy. But how .
. . ?
Easy, Stephanie said, lying back down. I just inserted your amazingly personal exp
eriences into pretty much every woman who ever lived. Well, except for the part a
bout Travis. I guessed about that. But it s pretty amazing, huh? I study that, too
, by the way. I ve been part of half a dozen studies, and it always amazes me that
once you cut through the clutter, people are pretty much the same. Especially t
hrough adolescence and early adulthood. For the most part, people go through the
same experiences and think the same things, but somehow no one ever escapes the
belief that his experience is unique in every conceivable way.
Gabby lay back on her towel, deciding it might be best if she simply ignored S
tephanie for a while. As much as she liked her, the woman made her head spin way
too frequently.
Oh, in case you were curious, Stephanie remarked, Travis isn t seeing anyone. He s no
t only single, but he s eligible.
I wasn t curious.
Since you have a boyfriend, right?
Right. But even if I didn t have a boyfriend, I wouldn t have been curious.
Stephanie laughed. Yes, of course. How could I have been so wrong? I guess I mu
st have been fooled by the way you keep staring at him.
I haven t been staring.
Oh, don t be so touchy. After all, he s been staring at you, too.
Ten
From her spot on her towel, Gabby inhaled the scent of charcoal, hot dogs, bur
gers, and chicken wafting on a gentle breeze. Despite the breeze-and the lotionGabby s skin felt as if it were beginning to sizzle. It sometimes struck her as ir
onic that her ancestors from Scotland and Ireland had bypassed northern climates
with similar cloudy weather to move to a place where prolonged exposure to the
sun practically guaranteed melanoma in people like them-or, at the very least, w
rinkles, which was the reason her mother wore hats even if her time outside was
limited to walking to and from the car. The fact that Gabby was subjecting herse
lf to sun damage was something she didn t want to think about, because the truth w
as she liked having a tan, and getting a tan felt sort of good. Besides, in just
a little while she d put on her shirt again and force herself to sit in the shade
.
Stephanie had been uncharacteristically quiet since her last comment. In some
people, that would have struck Gabby as discomfort or shyness; in Stephanie, it
came across as the kind of confidence Gabby had always secretly coveted. Because
Stephanie was so comfortable with herself, she made Gabby feel comfortable arou
nd her, which, she had to admit, was a feeling she had been missing lately. For
a long time, she hadn t been comfortable at home; she still wasn t comfortable at wo
rk; and she was less than confident about where things were going with Kevin.
As for Travis-the man definitely made her uncomfortable. Well, when he wasn t we
aring his shirt, anyway. Sneaking a peek, she spotted him sitting in the sand ne
ar the water s edge, building drip castles with the three toddlers. When their att
ention seemed to waver, he rose from his spot and chased them into the shallow s
urf, the sound of their joyous screams echoing through the air. Travis seemed to
be having as much fun as they were, and the sight of him made her want to smile
. She forced herself not to, on the off chance he might see it and get the wrong
idea.
The aroma finally forced Gabby to sit up. She couldn t shake the feeling of bein
g on some exotic island vacation instead of only minutes from Beaufort. The gent
le waves lapped in steady rhythm, and the few vacant beach houses behind them lo
oked as if they d been dropped from the sky. Over her shoulder, a path cut through
the dunes, angling toward the black-and-white lighthouse that had weathered tho
usands of rainstorms.
Surprisingly, no one else had joined them at the cove, which only added to its
appeal. Off to the side, she saw Laird standing over the portable grill, wieldi
ng a pair of tongs. Megan was lining up bags of potato chips and buns and openin
g Tupperware containers on a small fold-up table, while Liz was setting out cond
iments along with paper plates and plastic utensils. Joe and Matt were behind th
em, tossing a football back and forth. She couldn t remember a weekend from her ch
ildhood where a group of families got together to enjoy one another s company in a
gorgeous spot simply because it was . . . Saturday. She wondered if this was th
e way most people lived, or whether it had more do with life in a small town, or
whether it was simply a habit that these friends had formed long ago. Whatever
it was, she suspected she could get used to it.
Food s ready! Laird shouted.
Gabby slipped on her shirt and wandered toward the food, surprised by how hung
ry she was until she remembered that she hadn t had a chance to eat breakfast. Ove
r her shoulder, she saw Travis doing his best to herd the kids forward, scurryin
g around them like a cattle dog. The three of them rushed toward the grill, wher
e Megan stood guard.
Line up on the blanket, she ordered, and the toddlers- obviously out of well-tra
ined habit-did exactly as they were told.
Megan has magic powers with kids, Travis observed over her shoulder. He was brea
thing heavily, his hands on his hips. I wish they listened to me like that. I hav
e to resort to chasing them until I m about to pass out.
But you seem like such a natural.
I love playing with them, not herding. He leaned toward her conspiratorially. But
between you and me? This is what I ve learned about parents: The more you play wi
th their kids, the more they love you. When they watch someone who adores their
kids-genuinely delighting in them the same way they do-well, he just becomes the
cat s meow in the parents eyes.
Cat s meow?
I m a vet. I like animal clichés.
She couldn t suppress a smile. You re probably right about playing with the kids. M
y favorite relative was an aunt who would climb trees with me and my sisters whi
le all the other grown-ups sat in the living room talking.
And yet . . . , he said, motioning toward Stephanie, there you were, just loungin
g on the towel with my sister, instead of taking the chance to show these people
that you find their kids irresistible.
I . . .
I was kidding. He winked. The fact is, I wanted to spend time with them. And in a
little while, they ll start getting cranky. That s when I finally collapse in a bea
ch chair, wipe my brow, and let their parents take over.
In other words, when the going gets tough, the tough get going.
I think . . . that when the time comes, I just might volunteer your services.
Gee, thanks.
No problem. Hey-you hungry?
Starved.
By the time they reached the food, the kids were seated on the blanket with ho
t dogs, potato salad, and some diced fruit. Liz, Megan, and Allison sat near eno
ugh to monitor, but far enough away to converse. All three, Gabby noticed, ate c
hicken, along with various side dishes. Joe, Matt, and Laird had taken seats on
the coolers and sat with their plates on their knees, bottles of beer propped up
in the sand.
Burgers or chicken? Gabby inquired.
I like chicken. But the burgers are supposed to be terrific. I just never reall
y acquired the taste for red meat.
I thought all men ate burgers.
Then I guess I m not a man. He straightened up. Which, I must say, is really going
to surprise and disappoint my parents. Being that they gave me a masculine name
and all.
She laughed. Well . . . She nodded toward the grill. They clearly saved the last
piece of chicken for you.
That s only because we got here before Stephanie. She would have taken it, even t
hough she d rather have a burger, just because she knows I d end up not eating.
I knew there was a reason I liked her.
They reached for some plates as they eyed the appetizing variety of side dishe
s spread out on the table-beans, casseroles, potato, cucumber, and fruit saladsall of which smelled delicious. Gabby grabbed a bun, added some ketchup, mustard
, and pickles, and held out her plate. Travis dropped the chicken onto his plate
, then lifted a burger from the side of the grill and added it to her bun.
He scooped some fruit salad onto his plate; Gabby added a taste of pretty much
everything. When she was finished, she looked at both their plates with an almo
st guilty expression, which Travis thankfully didn t seem to notice.
Would you like a beer? he asked.
Sounds great.
He reached into the cooler and fished out a Coors Light, then grabbed a bottle
of water for himself.
Gotta drive the boat, he explained. He lifted his plate in the direction of the
dunes. How about over there?
Don t you want to eat near your friends?
They ll be all right, he said.
Lead the way.
They trudged toward the low dune, a spot shaded by a sickly, salt-poisoned tre
e, with branches all pointing in the same direction, bent by years of ocean bree
zes. Gabby could feel the sand slipping beneath her feet. Travis took a seat nea
r the dune, lowering himself to the sand Indian style in a single movement. Gabb
y sat next to him with considerably less grace, making sure to leave enough dist
ance between them so they wouldn t accidentally touch. Even in the shade, the sand
and water beyond were so bright that she had to squint.
Travis began to cut his piece of chicken, the plastic utensils bending under t
he pressure.
Coming out here reminds me of high school, he remarked. I can t tell you how many w
eekends we spent here back then. He shrugged. Different girls and no kids, of cour
se.
I ll bet that was fun.
It was, he said. I remember one night, Joe and Matt and Laird and I were out here
with a few girls we were trying to impress. We were sitting around a bonfire, d
rinking beer, telling jokes, and laughing. . . and I remember thinking that life
couldn t get any better.
Sounds like a Budweiser commercial. Aside from the fact that you were underage
and the whole thing was illegal.
And you never did anything like that, right?
Actually, no, she said. I didn t.
Really? Never?
Why do you look so surprised?
I don t know. I guess . . . I just don t see you as someone who grew up following a
ll the rules. When he saw her expression, he backtracked. Don t get me wrong. I didn t
mean it in a bad way. I just meant that you strike me as independent and someon
e who s always up for new adventures.
You don t know anything about me.
As soon as she said it, she remembered saying the same thing to Stephanie. She
braced herself for what might come next.
He absently moved his fruit with his fork. I know that you moved away from your
home, that you bought your own house, that you re making it on your own. To me, t
hat means independence. And as for adventurous-you re here with a bunch of strange
rs, aren t you? You went parasailing and even overcame the thought of sharks to ge
t dipped in the water. Those were new challenges. I think that s admirable.
She blushed, liking Travis s answer much better than his sister s. Maybe, she conced
ed. But it s not like traveling around the world without an itinerary.
Don t let that fool you. You think I wasn t nervous when I left? I was terrified. I
mean, it s one thing to tell your friends what you re going to do, and it s another t
hing entirely to actually get on the plane and land in a country where barely an
yone speaks English. Have you traveled?
Not much. Aside from a spring break I spent in the Bahamas, I ve never been out o
f the country. And if you get right down to it, if you stay close to the resort
like I did-surrounded by American college kids-it could have passed for Florida.
She paused. Where are you going next? Your next big adventure?
Nothing too far-flung this time. I m going to the Grand Tetons. Do some camping,
hiking, canoeing, the works. I ve heard it s breathtaking, and I ve never been there.
Are you going alone?
No, he said. I m going with my dad. I can t wait.
Gabby made a face. I can t imagine going off on a trip with either one of my pare
nts.
Why not?
My parents? You d have to know them to understand.
He waited. In the silence, she set aside her plate and brushed off her hands.
All right, she said with a sigh. First off, my mom is the kind of lady who believ
es that staying in anything less than a five-star hotel is roughing it. And my d
ad? I suppose I could imagine him doing something more exciting, except for the
fact that he s never shown interest in anything other than fishing. And besides, h
e wouldn t go anywhere without Mom, and since she has her standards, that means th
e only time spent outdoors is patio dining. With a fancy wine list and waiters i
n black and white, of course.
Sounds like they really love each other.
You inferred that from what I was saying?
That, and the idea that your mom isn t a fan of the great outdoors. That elicited
a laugh. They must be very proud of you, he added.
What makes you say that?
Why wouldn t they be?
Why indeed, she wondered. Let me count the ways. Let s just say that I m pretty sur
e my mom prefers my sisters. And trust me-my sisters are nothing like Stephanie.
You mean they always say appropriate things?
No. I mean they re just like my mom.
And that means she can t be proud of you?
She took a bite of her burger, taking her time before responding. It s complicate
d, she demurred.
How so? he persisted.
For one thing, I have red hair. My sisters are all blond, like Mom.
So?
And I m twenty-six and still single.
So?
I want a career.
So?
None of that fits the image of the daughter my mother wants. She has definite i
deas about the role of women, especially southern women of proper social standin
g.
I m getting the sense that you and your mother don t get along.
Ya think?
Just over his shoulder, Gabby saw Allison and Laird strolling down the path to
ward the lighthouse, hand in hand.
Maybe she s jealous, he said. Here you are, making your own life with your own goal
s and dreams, dreams independent of the world you grew up in, the world she expe
cted you to inhabit-simply because she did. It takes courage to do something dif
ferent, and maybe what you think is disappointment in you is actually, on some d
eeper level, disappointment in herself.
He took a bite of chicken and waited for her reaction. Gabby was flummoxed. It
was something she d never considered.
That s not it, she finally forced out.
Maybe not. Have you ever asked her?
Whether she felt disappointed in herself? I don t think so. And don t tell me that
you d confront your parents that way, either. Because . . .
I wouldn t, he said, shaking his head. Not a chance. But I have a feeling that both
of them are probably extremely proud of you, even if they don t know how to show
it.
His comment was unexpected and strangely affecting. She leaned toward him slig
htly. I don t know whether you re right, but thanks anyway. And I don t want you to get
the wrong impression. I mean, we talk on the phone every week and we re civil. It s
just that I sometimes wish things were different. I d love to have the kind of re
lationship where we really enjoyed spending time together.
Travis said nothing in response, and Gabby found herself relieved that he didn t
try to offer a solution or advice. When she d related similar feelings to Kevin,
his first instinct had been to come up with a game plan to change things. Pullin
g up her legs, she wrapped her arms around her knees. Tell me-what s the best thing
about being a vet?
The animals, he said. And the people. But that s probably what you expected me to s
ay, right?
She thought about Eva Bronson. The animals I can understand. . . .
He held up his hands. Don t get me wrong. I m sure that some of the people I deal w
ith are a lot like some of the people you have to deal with.
You mean pushy? Neurotic? With tendencies toward hypochondria? In other words,
crazy?
Of course. People are people, and a lot of them consider their pets members of
the family. Which, of course, means that if they even suspect anything is wrong
with their pet, they demand a full exam-which means they bring them in at least
once a week, sometimes more. Almost always it s nothing, but my dad and I have a s
ystem in place to deal with it.
What do you do?
We put a yellow sticker on the inside flap of the pet s file. So if Mrs. Worried
comes in with Pokie or Whiskers, we see the sticker, do a cursory exam, and tell
them that we don t currently see anything wrong, but we d like to see the dog or ca
t in a week just to make sure. Since they were going to bring their pet in anywa
y, it helps get them in and out of the office quickly. And everyone is happy. We r
e the caring veterinarians, and the owners are assured that their pets are okay,
but that they d been right to worry, since we wanted to see them again.
I wonder how the doctors in my office would react if I started putting yellow s
tickers on a few files.
That bad?
Sometimes. Every time there s a new issue of Reader s Digest, or some news show tha
t identifies a rare disease with specific symptoms, the waiting room fills up wi
th kids who naturally have exactly those symptoms.
I d probably be the same way with my kid.
She shook her head. I doubt that. You strike me more as the walk-it-off or slee
p-it-off kind of guy. And as a parent, I don t think you ll be any different.
Maybe you re right, he admitted.
Oh, I m right.
Because you know me?
Hey, she said, you and your sister started it.
For the next half hour, they sat together, talking in a way that felt remarkab
ly familiar. She talked more about her mother and father and their polar persona
lities; she told him a bit about her sisters and what it was like to grow up wit
h so much pressure to conform. She filled him in on college and PA school and sh
ared some of her memories of the evenings she d spent in Beaufort before moving to
town. She mentioned Kevin only in passing, which surprised her until she realiz
ed that even though he was a major part of her life now, that hadn t always been t
he case. Somehow, talking to Travis reminded her that she d become the woman she w
as going to be long before meeting Kevin.
As the conversation wound down, she found herself confessing to her occasional
frustration at work, the words sometimes spilling out in a way she didn t quite i
ntend. Though she didn t mention Dr. Melton, she did relate stories about some of
the parents she d met in her practice. She didn t give any names, but occasionally T
ravis would smile in a way that suggested he knew exactly whom she was talking a
bout.
By then, Megan and Liz had packed most of the food back inside the coolers. La
ird and Allison had gone for a walk. Matt, on the other hand, had half his body
buried in sand by the toddlers, who didn t quite possess the coordination to preve
nt their shovels from raining sand into his eyes, nose, mouth, and ears.
Just then, a Frisbee landed near Gabby s feet, and she saw Joe approaching.
I think it s time we rescued Matt, he called out. He pointed toward the Frisbee. Yo
u up for it?
Are you saying they need some entertainment?
Joe grinned. I don t think we have a choice.
Travis looked at her. Do you mind?
No, go ahead.
I have to warn you-it s not going to be pretty. He stood up and shouted in the tod
dlers direction, Hey, kids? Are you guys ready to see the World Champion Frisbee e
xpert in action?
Yay!!! came the chorus. They dropped their shovels and dashed toward the water.
Gotta go, Travis said. My audience awaits.
As he jogged down to the waterline and sloshed in, Gabby found herself followi
ng his movements and feeling something oddly like affection.
Spending time with Travis wasn t at all the way she d imagined it would be. There
was no pretension, few attempts to impress, and he seemed to have an intuitive f
eel for when to stay silent or when to respond. It was that feeling of engagemen
t, she realized, that led her to embark on a relationship with Kevin in the firs
t place. It wasn t only the physical excitement she felt on the nights they spent
together; more than that, she craved the comfort she experienced during those qu
iet moments they spent talking or when he gently took her hand as they walked th
rough a parking lot on the way to dinner. Those were the moments in which it was
easy to think he was the one she was meant to spend her life with, moments that
lately had been fewer and farther between.
Gabby reflected on this as she watched Travis dive for the Frisbee. He bungled
the catch, allowing the Frisbee to hit him in the chest, and landed in the surf
with a dramatic cascade of water. The toddlers squealed with delight, as if it
were the funniest thing they d ever seen. When they shouted, Do it again, Uncle Tra
vis! he jumped to his feet with equal flamboyance. He took three long, slow-motio
n strides and sent the Frisbee flying back to Joe. Putting on his game face, he
assumed the exaggerated crouch of a baseball player, readying for the next catch
in the infield. With a wink toward the kids, he promised, The next time, I won t e
ven get wet! and followed his comment with a splashing, seizurelike miss that eli
cited even more squeals of delight. He seemed genuinely to enjoy performing for
the kids, which only increased her feelings of warmth toward him. She was still
trying to make sense of her reaction to Travis when he finally emerged from the
ocean and started toward her, shaking the water from his hair. A moment later, h
e plopped down on the sand beside her, and when they accidentally touched, Gabby
had the briefest flash of them sitting together just like this on a hundred dif
ferent weekends in the future.
Eleven
The rest of the afternoon seemed to replay the events of the morning in revers
e. They spent another hour at the beach before reloading the boat; on their way
back, each couple rode once more in the parasail, though on her second trip Gabb
y rode with Stephanie. By late afternoon, the boat was cruising through the inle
t, and Travis stopped to buy some shrimp from a local fisherman he obviously kne
w well. By the time they finally docked back at the house, all three toddlers we
re sound asleep. The adults were windblown and content, their faces darkened by
the hours in the sun.
Once the boat was unloaded, the couples departed one by one, until only Gabby,
Stephanie, and Travis remained. Travis was on the dock with Moby; he d already sp
read the parachute on the dock so it could dry and was currently rinsing off the
boat with a garden hose.
Stephanie stretched her arms overhead. I guess I should be on my way, too. Dinn
er with the folks tonight. They get hurt feelings if I come down here and don t sp
end enough time with them. You know how it goes. Let me say good-bye to Travis.
Gabby nodded, watching lethargically as Stephanie leaned over the deck railing
.
Hey, Trav! Stephanie shouted. I m outta here. Thanks for today!
Glad you could come, he shouted with a wave.
You might want to toss something on the grill. Gabby just said she s starving!
Gabby s lethargy vanished immediately, but before she could say anything, she sa
w Travis give a thumbs-up.
I ll be up in a minute to start the grill! he shouted. Just let me finish up here.
Stephanie sauntered by Gabby, obviously pleased with her social engineering.
Why d you say that? Gabby hissed.
Because I m going to be with my parents. I don t want my poor brother to have to sp
end the rest of the evening alone. He likes to have people around.
Well, what if I wanted to go home?
Then tell him when he gets up here that you ve changed your mind. He won t care. Al
l I did was buy you a couple of minutes to think about it, since I guarantee tha
t he would have asked you anyway, and then-if you d said no-would have asked a sec
ond time. She slung her bag over her shoulder. Hey, it was great getting to know y
ou. I m glad we had the chance to meet. Do you ever get up to the Raleigh area?
Sometimes, Gabby said, still thrown by what had just happened and unsure whether
to be pleased or angry with Stephanie.
Good. We can do lunch. I d say we could do brunch tomorrow, but I really have to
get back. She removed her sunglasses and wiped them with her shirt. See you again?
Sure, Gabby said.
Stephanie went to the patio door, slid it open, then vanished inside, cutting
through the house on the way to the door. By that point, Travis was already stro
lling up the dock, Moby trotting happily by his side. For the first time today,
he d put on a short-sleeved shirt, though he left it unbuttoned.
Just give me a second to get the coals going. Shrimp kabobs okay?
She debated only an instant before realizing that it was either this or head h
ome to a microwave dinner and some awful show on television, and she couldn t help
but remember the feeling she d had when watching Travis frolic in the surf with t
he toddlers.
Just give me a few minutes to change?
While Travis got the coals going, Gabby checked on Molly, finding her sleeping
soundly along with the puppies.
She took a quick shower before changing into a light cotton skirt and blouse.
After drying her hair, she debated whether to put on makeup, then decided on jus
t a bit of mascara. The sun had given her face some color, and when she stepped
back from the mirror, it occurred to her that it had been years since she d last h
ad dinner with a man other than Kevin.
A case could be made that it was simply a continuation of the day, or that she d
been tricked into dinner by Stephanie, but she knew that neither was completely
true.
Still, was her decision to have dinner with Travis something she should feel g
uilty about, perhaps even conceal from Kevin? Her first impulse was to insist th
at she d have no reason not to tell Kevin. The day had been harmless-technically,
she d spent more time with Stephanie than she had with Travis. So what was the big
deal?
You re dining alone tonight, of course, a little voice whispered.
But was that really a problem? Stephanie had been right: She was hungry again,
and her neighbor had food. Human Necessity 101. It wasn t as though she were goin
g to sleep with him. She had no intention of even kissing him. They were friends
, that s all. And if Kevin were here, she was sure that Travis would have invited
him along, too.
But he s not here, the voice insisted. Will you tell Kevin about your little din
ner for two?
Definitely. I ll definitely tell him, she muttered, trying to quiet the little voi
ce. There were times when she absolutely hated the little voice. The little voic
e sounded like her mother.
Thus decided, she looked at herself one last time in the mirror and, pleased w
ith what she saw, slipped out the patio door and started across the lawn.
As Gabby weaved her way between the hedges and appeared at the edge of the law
n, Travis caught the movement from the corner of his eye and found himself stari
ng unabashedly as she approached. When she stepped onto the deck, he felt a stra
nge shift in the atmosphere, catching him off guard.
Hey, she said simply. How long until dinner?
A couple of minutes, he answered. Your timing is perfect.
She peeked at the skewered shrimp and brightly colored peppers and onions. As
if on cue, her stomach grumbled. Wow, she murmured, hoping he didn t hear it. They lo
ok great.
Do you want anything to drink? He gestured toward the opposite end of the deck. I
think there s some beer and soda left over in the cooler.
As she crossed the deck, Travis tried to ignore the gentle sway of her hips, w
ondering what had gotten into him. He watched as she flipped open the lid, rumma
ged through the cooler, and pulled out two beers. When she returned to hand him
one, he felt her fingers graze his. He twisted open the cap and took a long pull
, looking down the line of the bottle at her. In the silence, she stared at the
water. The sun, hovering over the tree line, was still bright, but its heat had
diminished and shadows were gradually stretching across the lawn.
This is why I bought my place, she finally said. For views like this.
It s gorgeous, isn t it? He realized that he was watching her as he said it and forc
ed away the subconscious implications. He cleared his throat. How s Molly?
She seems fine. She was sleeping when I checked on her. She looked around. Where s
Moby?
I think he wandered around the front. He got bored with my cooking once he real
ized I wasn t about to offer him any scraps.
He eats shrimp?
He eats anything.
Discriminating, she said with a wink. Is there anything I can do to help?
Not really. Unless you want to grab some plates from the kitchen.
Be happy to. She nodded. Where are they, exactly?
In the cupboard to the left of the sink. Oh, and the pineapple, too. It s on the
counter. And the knife. It should be right there.
Be back in a minute.
And would you mind bringing some silverware, too? It s in the drawer near the dis
hwasher.
As soon as she turned to enter the house, Travis found himself studying her. T
here was definitely something about Gabby that interested him. It wasn t simply th
at she was attractive; there were pretty women everywhere. There was something a
bout her straightforward intelligence and unforced humor that suggested a ground
ed sense of right and wrong. Beauty and earthy common sense were a rare combinat
ion, yet he doubted she was even aware she possessed it.
By the time she emerged, the kabobs were ready. He loaded a couple on each pla
te along with some slices of pineapple, and they took their seats at the table.
Beyond them, the slow-moving creek reflected the sky like a mirror, the stillnes
s broken only by a flock of starlings passing overhead.
This is delicious, she said.
Thank you.
She took a sip of her beer and motioned to the boat. Are you going out again to
morrow?
I don t think so. Tomorrow I ll probably go riding.
Horseback riding?
He shook his head. Motorcycle. When I was in college, I bought a beat-up 1983 H
onda Shadow with the goal of restoring it and turning it around for a quick prof
it. Let s just say it wasn t quick, and I doubt I ll ever make a profit. But I can say
I did all the work myself.
That must be rewarding.
Pointless is probably a better word. It s not very practical, since it has a tend
ency to break down and genuine parts are almost impossible to find. But isn t that
the price of owning a classic?
The beer was going down easy, and she took another drink. I have no idea. I don t
even change my own oil.
Have you ever gone riding?
No. Too dangerous.
Danger depends more on the rider and the conditions than the bike.
But yours breaks down.
True. But I like to live life on the edge.
I ve noticed that about your personality.
Is that good or bad?
Neither. But it s definitely unpredictable. Especially when I try to reconcile it
with the fact that you re a veterinarian. It s such a stable-sounding profession. W
hen I think of veterinarians, I automatically think family man, complete with an
apron-wearing wife and kids visiting the orthodontist.
In other words, boring. Like the most exciting thing I should do is golf.
She thought of Kevin. There are worse things.
Just to let you know, I am a family man. Travis shrugged. Except for the family p
art.
That s kind of a prerequisite, don t you think?
I think that being a family man is more about having the proper worldview than
the actual condition of having a family.
Nice try. She squinted at him, feeling the effects of the beer. I m not sure I coul
d ever imagine you being married. Somehow, it just doesn t seem to fit you. You se
em more like the dating lots of women, perpetual bachelor kind of guy.
You re not the first person to say that to me. In fact, if I didn t know better, I d
say you spent too much time listening to my friends today.
They were very flattering.
That s why I take them on the boat.
And Stephanie?
She s an enigma. But she s also my sister, so what can I do? Like I said, I m a famil
y-oriented guy.
Why do I get the feeling you re trying to impress me?
Maybe I am. Tell me about your boyfriend. Is he a family man, too?
None of your business, she said.
Okay, don t tell me. At least not yet. Tell me about growing up in Savannah inste
ad.
I already told you about my family. What else is there to tell?
Tell me anything.
She hesitated. It was hot in the summer. Very hot. And humid, too.
Are you always this vague?
I think a little mystery keeps things interesting.
Does your boyfriend think that, too?
My boyfriend knows me.
Is he tall?
What does that matter?
It doesn t. I m just making conversation.
Then let s talk about something else.
All right. Have you ever been surfing?
Nope.
Scuba diving?
Nope.
Bummer.
Why? Because I don t know what I m missing?
No, he said. Because now that my friends are married with children, I need to fin
d someone who s up for things like that on a regular basis.
As far as I can tell, you seem to find ways to keep yourself entertained. You re
wakeboarding or Jet Skiing as soon as you get off work.
There s more to life than just those two things. Like parasailing.
She laughed and he joined in, and she realized she liked the sound of it.
I have a question about vet school, she said apropos of nothing, but no longer c
aring about the direction of their conversation. It felt good just to relax, to
bask in the pleasure of Travis s company. It made her feel at ease. I know it s dumb,
but I ve always wondered how much anatomy you had to study. As in, how many diffe
rent kinds of animals?
Just the major ones, he said. Cow, horse, pig, dog, cat, and chicken.
And you had to know pretty much everything about each one?
As far as anatomy goes, yes.
She considered that. Wow. I thought it was hard just doing people.
Yeah, but remember: Most people won t sue me if their chicken dies. Your responsi
bility is much greater, especially since you re dealing with kids. He paused. And I ll
bet you re great with them.
Why would you say that?
You have an aura of kindness and patience.
Uh-huh. I think you got too much sun today.
Probably, he said. He motioned to her bottle as he stood. Want another?
She hadn t even realized she d finished. I d better not.
I won t tell anyone.
That s not the point. I don t want to give you the wrong impression about me.
I doubt that s possible.
I don t think my boyfriend would appreciate it.
Then it s a good thing he s not here, isn t it? Besides, we re just getting to know eac
h other. What harm is there in that?
Fine. She sighed. Last one, though.
He brought two more over and opened hers. As soon as she took a drink and felt
the corresponding buzz as it went down, she heard a voice inside her whisper, Y
ou shouldn t be doing this.
You d like him, she said, trying to reestablish some boundaries between them. He s a
great guy.
I m sure he is.
And yes, to answer your earlier question, he s tall.
I thought you didn t want to talk about him.
I don t. I just want you to know I love him.
Love is a wonderful thing. It makes life worthwhile. I love being in love.
Spoken like a man with plenty of experience. But keep in mind that true love la
sts forever.
Poets would say that true love always ends in tragedy.
And you re a poet?
No. I m just telling you what they say. I m not saying I agree. Like you, I m more of
a happy-ending romantic. My parents have been married forever, and that s what I
want to have one day, too.
Gabby couldn t help thinking that he was very good at this sort of flirty banter
-and then reminded herself that it was because he d had a lot of practice. Still,
she had to admit there was something flattering about his attention, even if she
knew Kevin wouldn t approve.
Did you know that I almost bought your house? he asked.
She shook her head, surprised.
It was for sale at the same time this one was. I liked the floor plan better th
an this one, but this one already had the deck and the boathouse and a lift. It
was a tough choice.
And now you ve even got a hot tub.
You like that? He cocked an eyebrow. We could get in later, once the sun goes dow
n.
I don t have my suit.
Bathing suits are optional, of course.
She rolled her eyes, pointedly ignoring the shiver that had gone through her. I
don t think so.
He stretched, looking pleased with himself. How about just our feet, then.
I could probably handle that.
It s a start.
And a finish.
That goes without saying.
On the other side of the creek, the setting sun was changing the sky to a gold
en palette of colors that stretched across the horizon. Travis pulled another ch
air closer and propped his feet on it. Gabby stared across the water, feeling a
sense of well-being she hadn t experienced in a long time.
Tell me about Africa, she said. Is it as otherwordly as it seems?
It was for me, he said. I kept wanting to go back. Like something in my genes rec
ognized it as home, even though there was so little there that I saw that remind
ed me of the world I came from.
Did you see any lions or elephants?
Many.
Was that amazing?
It s something I ll never forget.
She was quiet for a moment. I m envious.
Then go. And if you do, make sure you visit Victoria Falls. It s the most amazing
place I ve ever seen. The rainbows, the mist, the incredible roar-it s like you re st
anding on the very edge of the world.
She smiled dreamily. How long were you there?
Which time?
How many times have you been there?
Three.
She tried to imagine living a life so free but somehow failed. Tell me about al
l of them.
They talked quietly for a long time, dusk giving way to darkness. His colorful
descriptions of people and places were vivid and detailed, making her feel as i
f she d been alongside him, and she found herself wondering how many times, and wi
th how many other women, he d shared these stories. Halfway through, he rose from
the table and brought back two bottles of water, respecting her earlier comment,
and the appreciation she felt added to her growing sense of affection for Travi
s. Though she knew it was wrong, she was somehow unable to stop it.
By the time they got up to bring the dishes into the house, stars were twinkli
ng overhead. While Travis rinsed the dishes, Gabby toured Travis s living room, th
inking it was less like a bachelor pad than she d imagined it would be. The furnit
ure was comfortable and stylish, brown leather couches, walnut end tables, and b
rass lamps, and while the room was clean, it wasn t obsessively so. Magazines were
stacked haphazardly on the television, and she could see a thin layer of dust o
n the stereo, which somehow seemed just right. Instead of artwork lining the wal
ls, there were movie posters that reflected Travis s eclectic taste: Casablanca on
one wall, Die Hard on another, with Home Alone right next to that. Behind her,
she heard the faucet stop, and a moment later, Travis stepped into the room.
She smiled. You ready to go soak our feet?
As long as you don t show too much skin.
They wandered back outside to the hot tub. Travis flipped open the cover and s
et it aside while Gabby removed her sandals; a moment later, they were sitting b
eside each other, their feet swishing back and forth. Gabby stared upward, traci
ng images in the skies above her.
What are you thinking about? Travis asked.
The stars, she said. I bought an astronomy book, and I m trying to see if I remembe
r anything.
Do you?
Just the big ones. The obvious ones. She pointed toward the house. Go straight up
from the chimney about two fists and you ll see Orion s belt. Betelgeuse is on Orio
n s left shoulder, and Rigel is the name of his foot. He has two hunting dogs. The
bright star over there is Sirius, and that s part of Canis Major, and Procyon is
part of Canis Minor.
Travis spotted Orion s belt, and though he tried to follow her direction, he cou
ldn t make out the others. I m not sure I see the other two.
I can t, either. I just know they re there.
He pointed over her shoulder. I can see the Big Dipper. Right over there. That s
the only one I can always find.
It s also known as the Big Bear, or Ursa Major. Did you know that a bear figure h
as been associated with that constellation since the ice age?
I can t say that I did.
I just love the names, even if I can t make out all the constellations yet. Canes
Venatici, Coma Berenices, the Pleiades, Antinous, Cassiopeia . . . their names
sound like music.
I take it this is a new hobby of yours.
It s more like good intentions buried in the detritus of daily life. But for a co
uple of days there, I was really into it.
He laughed. At least you re honest.
I know my limitations. Still, I wish I knew more. When I was in seventh grade,
I had a teacher who loved astronomy. He had this way of talking about stars that
made you remember them forever.
What did he say?
That staring at the stars was like staring backward in time, since some stars a
re so far away that their light takes millions of years just to reach us. That w
e see stars not as they look now, but as they were when dinosaurs roamed the ear
th. The whole concept just struck me as . . . amazing somehow.
He sounds like a great teacher.
He was. And we learned a lot, although I ve forgotten most of it, as you can tell
. But the feeling of wonder is still there. When I stare at the sky, I just know
that someone was doing the exact same thing thousands of years ago.
Travis watched her, entranced by the sound of her voice in the darkness.
And what s strange, she went on, is that even though we know so much more about the
universe, ordinary people today know less about the daily sky than our ancestor
s. Even without telescopes or mathematics or even the knowledge that the world w
as round, they used stars to navigate, they scanned the sky for specific constel
lations to know when to plant their crops, they used stars when constructing bui
ldings, they learned to predict eclipses . . . it just makes me wonder what it w
as like to live so faithfully by the stars. Lost in thought, she was quiet for a
long moment. Sorry. I m probably boring you.
Not at all. In fact, I ll never think of stars in the same way again.
You re teasing me.
Absolutely not, he said seriously.
His gaze held hers. She had the sudden sense that he was about to kiss her, an
d she quickly turned away. In that moment, she was acutely aware of the sound of
frogs calling from the marsh grass and crickets singing in the trees. The moon
had reached its apex, casting a shimmery glow around them. Gabby moved her feet
nervously in the water, knowing she should leave.
I think my feet are getting wrinkled, she said.
Do you want me to get a towel?
No, that s okay. But I should probably be going. It s getting late.
He stood and offered a hand. When she took it, she felt the warmth and strengt
h in it. I ll walk you back.
I m sure I can find my way.
Just to the bushes, then.
At the table, she picked up her sandals and spotted Moby heading their way. He
trotted up to them just as they stepped onto the grass, his tongue flapping hap
pily. Moby circled them before charging toward the water, as if making sure noth
ing was hiding. He came to a stop with front paws slapping, then charged off in
another direction.
Moby is a dog with boundless curiosity and enthusiasm, Travis observed.
Kind of like you.
Kind of. Except I don t roll in fish guts.
She smiled. The grass was soft underfoot, and they reached the hedge a moment
later. I had a wonderful time today, she said. And tonight, too.
So did I. And thanks for the astronomy lesson.
I ll do better next time. I ll impress you with my stellar knowledge.
He laughed. Nice pun. Did you just think of that?
No, that was my teacher again. That s what he used to say when class was ending.
Travis shuffled his feet, then looked up at Gabby again. What are you doing tom
orrow?
Nothing really. I know I have to go to the grocery store. Why?
Do you want to come with me?
On your motorcycle?
I want to show you something. And it ll be fun-I promise. I ll even bring lunch.
She hesitated. It was a simple question, and she knew what the answer should b
e, especially if she wanted to keep her life from getting complicated. I don t thin
k that s a good idea was all she had to say, and it would be over.
She thought about Kevin and the guilt she d felt minutes earlier, about the choi
ce she d made by moving here in the first place. Yet despite those things, or mayb
e even because of them, she found herself beginning to smile.
Sure, she said. What time?
If he seemed surprised by her answer, he didn t show it. How about eleven? I ll giv
e you a chance to sleep in.
She raised a hand to her hair. Well, listen, thanks again. . . .
Yeah, you too. See you tomorrow.
For an instant, she thought she d simply turn and leave. But again their eyes me
t and held for just a beat too long, and before she realized what was happening,
Travis placed a hand on her hip and pulled her toward him. He kissed her, his l
ips neither soft nor hard against hers. It took an instant for her brain to regi
ster what was happening, and then she pushed him back.
What are you doing? she gasped.
I couldn t help it. He shrugged, seeming not the least bit apologetic. It just seem
ed like the right thing to do.
You know I have a boyfriend, she repeated, knowing that deep down she hadn t minde
d the kiss at all and hating herself for it.
I m sorry if I made you uncomfortable, he said.
It s fine, she said, holding up her hands, keeping him at a distance. Just forget a
bout it. But it s not going to happen again, okay?
Right.
Right, she repeated, suddenly wanting to go home. She shouldn t have put herself i
n this position. She d known what was going to happen, she d even warned herself abo
ut it, and sure enough, she d been right.
She turned and started through the hedge, breathing fast. He d kissed her! She s
till couldn t believe it. Though she intended to march straight to her door, makin
g sure he realized how adamant she d been about not wanting it to happen again, sh
e snuck a peek over her shoulder and was mortified to realize he d seen her. He ra
ised a hand in a relaxed wave.
See you tomorrow, he called out.
She didn t bother to respond, since there was really no reason to. The thought o
f what might happen tomorrow left her with a sense of dread. Why did he have to
ruin things? Why couldn t they just be neighbors and friends? Why had it ended lik
e this?
She pulled the slider closed behind her and marched to her bedroom, doing her
best to work up the anger she felt the situation merited. It should have worked,
but for the shaky legs and hammering heart, and the lingering realization that
Travis Parker found her desirable enough to want to kiss her.
Twelve
After Gabby had left, Travis emptied the cooler. Wanting to spend some time wi
th Moby, he grabbed the tennis ball, but even as he began their familiar game of
fetch, his thoughts kept returning to Gabby. As Moby bounded through the yard,
he couldn t shake the memory of the way Gabby s eyes crinkled when she smiled or the
awe in her voice as she d named the stars. He found himself wondering about her r
elationship with her boyfriend. Curiously, she hadn t said much about him-whatever
her reasons, it struck him as an effective way to keep him guessing.
No question, he was definitely interested in her. It was odd, though. If histo
ry was any guide, she really wasn t his type. She didn t strike him as particularly
delicate or touchy, a hothouse flower-he seemed to attract those types of women
in droves. When he teased her, she teased him right back; when he pushed the bou
ndaries, she had no qualms about putting him in his place. He liked her spirited
nature, her self-control and confidence, and he especially liked the fact that
she didn t seem conscious of possessing those qualities. The whole day struck him
as a tantalizing dance, in which each of them had taken turns leading, one pushi
ng, the other pulling, and vice versa. He wondered if a dance like that could go
on forever.
That had been one of the downfalls of his past relationships. Even in the earl
y stages, they had always been one-sided. Usually he d ended up making most of the
decisions about what to do or where to eat or whose house to go to or what movi
e to see. That part didn t bother him; what bothered him was that over time, the o
ne-sidedness began to define everything about the relationship, which inevitably
left him feeling as if he were dating an employee instead of a partner. Frankly
, it bored him.
It was strange, he hadn t really thought of his previous relationships in this l
ight. He usually didn t think about them at all. Somehow, spending time with Gabby
made him think about what he d been missing. He replayed their conversations in h
is head, realizing that he wanted more of them, more of her. He shouldn t have kis
sed her, he thought with a burst of uncharacteristic anxiety-he had gone too far
. But now, all he could do was wait and see, and hope she didn t change her mind a
bout coming with him tomorrow. What could he do? Nothing, he realized. Nothing a
t all.
How d it go? Stephanie asked.
Feeling foggy the following morning, Travis could barely open his eyes. What ti
me is it?
I don t know. It s early, though.
Why are you calling me?
Because I want to know how dinner went with Gabby.
Is the sun even up?
Don t change the subject. Spill it.
You re being awfully nosy about this.
I m a nosy gal. But don t worry. You already told me the answer.
I didn t say anything.
Exactly. I assume you re seeing her today, too?
Travis pulled the phone away and stared at it, wondering how his sister always
seemed to know everything.
StephTell her I said hey. But listen, I gotta go. Thanks for keeping me informed.
She hung up before he had a chance to respond.
Gabby s first thought upon waking the next morning was that she liked to think o
f herself as a good person. Growing up, she d always tried to follow the rules. Sh
e kept her room clean, studied for exams, did her best to mind her manners aroun
d her parents.
It wasn t last night s kiss that had her doubting her integrity. She hadn t had anyt
hing to do with that-that was all Travis. And the day had been innocent enough-s
he d be perfectly happy telling Kevin all about it. No, her guilt had more to do w
ith the fact that she d willingly returned for dinner with Travis. If she had been
honest with herself, she could have anticipated Travis s agenda and headed off th
e situation. Especially at the end. What had she been thinking?
As for Kevin . . . talking to him hadn t done much to erase the memory.
She d called him last night after she d gotten back to her house. As his cell phon
e rang, she d prayed he wouldn t detect the guilt in her tone. No problem there, she d
quickly realized; they could barely hear each other at all, since he d answered t
he phone while in a nightclub.
Hey, sweetie, she said, I just wanted to callHey, Gabby! he interrupted. It s really loud in here, so speak up.
He shouted so loudly that she had to hold the phone away from her ear. I can te
ll.
What?
I said it sounds noisy! she shouted back. I take it you re having a good time?
I can barely hear you! What did you say?
In the background, she heard a woman s voice asking if he wanted another vodka t
onic; Kevin s answer was lost in the cacophony.
Where are you?
I m not sure of the name. Just some club!
What kind of club?
Just someplace these other guys wanted to go! No big deal!
I m glad you re having a good time.
Speak up!
She brought her fingers to the bridge of her nose and squeezed. I just wanted t
o talk. I miss you.
Yeah, miss you, too, but I ll be home in a few days! Listen, though . . .
I know, I know-you ve got to go.
Let me call you back tomorrow, okay?
Sure.
Love you!
Love you, too.
Gabby hung up, annoyed. She d just wanted to talk to him, but she supposed she s
hould have known better. Conventions had a way of turning grown men back into ad
olescents-she d witnessed that firsthand at a medical convention she d attended in B
irmingham a few months ago. By day, meetings were packed with earnest, serious-m
inded doctors; at night, she d watched from her hotel window as they d traveled in p
acks, drunk too much, and generally made fools of themselves. No harm in that. S
he didn t believe for a moment that he had gotten himself into trouble or done any
thing he d regret.
Like kiss someone else?
She threw back the covers, really wishing she could stop thinking about that.
She didn t want to think about the weight of Travis s hand on her hip as he d pulled h
er toward him, and she definitely didn t want to think about the way his lips felt
against hers or the electric spark she d felt because of it. Still, as she headed
for the shower, something else was bugging her, something she couldn t quite put
her finger on. Turning on the water, she found herself wondering if-in the brief
instant it had happened-she d also kissed him back.
Unable to go back to sleep after Stephanie s call, Travis went jogging. Afterwar
d, he d tossed his surfboard in the back of his truck and driven across the bridge
to Bogue Banks. After parking in the Sheraton Hotel lot, he hefted his board an
d made for the water. He wasn t alone; there were a dozen others who d had the same
idea, and he waved at a few he recognized. Like Travis, most wouldn t stay long; t
he best waves came early and would be gone as soon as the tide shifted. But it w
as still the perfect way to start the day.
The water was brisk-in another month, it would be nearly perfect-and he paddle
d over the swells, trying to get into rhythm. He wasn t a great surfer-in Bali, he d
studied some of the monster waves and shook his head, knowing that if he even a
ttempted to ride them, he d probably be killed-but he was good enough to enjoy him
self.
He was used to being alone. Laird was the other surfer in his group of friends
, but he hadn t gone with Travis in years. Ashley and Melinda, two former girlfrie
nds, had gone surfing with him a few times in the past-but neither ever seemed a
ble to meet him on the spur of the moment, and typically, by the time they arriv
ed, he was just finishing up, which threw the morning out of whack. And as usual
, it had been up to him to suggest the activity in the first place.
He was, he realized, a little disappointed in himself for choosing the same ty
pe of woman over and over. No wonder Allison and Megan liked to give him such a
hard time. It must have been like watching the same play with different actors,
the outcome always the same. As he lay on the surfboard, watching the swells app
roach, he realized that the same thing that made women initially attractive to h
im-their need to be taken care of-was the very thing that eventually signaled th
e end of the relationship. How did that old saying go? If you ve been divorced onc
e, you might be right in thinking your ex was the problem. If you ve been divorced
three times? Well, folks, the problem is most definitely you. Granted, he hadn t
been divorced, but the point was well taken.
It amazed him that all this soul-searching seemed prompted by his day with Gab
by. Gabby, the woman who d falsely accused him, consistently avoided him, overtly
antagonized him, and then made a point of repeatedly mentioning that she was in
love with someone else. Go figure.
Behind him a swell seemed promising, and Travis began to paddle hard, maneuver
ing himself into the best possible position. Despite the glory of the day and th
e pleasures of the ocean, he couldn t escape the truth: What he really wanted to d
o was to spend as much time as possible with Gabby, for as long as he possibly c
ould.
Good morning, Kevin said into the phone, just as Gabby was getting ready to leav
e. Gabby moved the receiver to her other shoulder.
Oh, hey, she answered. How are you?
Good. Listen, I just wanted to tell you that I m sorry about the call last night.
I wanted to call you when I got back to the room to apologize, but by then it w
as pretty late.
It s okay. You sounded like you were having fun.
It was less thrilling than you probably think. The music was so loud that my ea
rs are still ringing. I don t know why I went with those guys in the first place.
I should have known I was in trouble when they started doing shots right after d
inner, but someone had to keep an eye on them.
And I m sure you were the model of sobriety.
Of course, he said. You know I don t drink much. Which means, of course, that I ll pr
obably crush them in the golf tournament today. They ll be too hung over to even h
it the ball.
Who were they?
Just some other brokers from Charlotte and Columbia. By the way they were actin
g, you d have thought they hadn t been out in years.
Maybe they haven t.
Yeah, well . . . She could hear him rustling and assumed he was getting dressed.
How about you? What did you end up doing?
She hesitated. Not too much.
I wish you could have come down. It would have been a lot more fun if you d been
here.
You know I couldn t get off work.
I know. But I wanted to say it anyway. I ll try to give you a call later, okay?
Sure. I might be out and about.
Oh, how s Molly doing?
She s doing well.
I think I might want one of those puppies. They were cute.
You re just trying to get on my good side.
That s the only side to be on. Hey, I was thinking, though. Maybe you and I could
head down to Miami this fall for a long weekend. One of the guys I was talking
to just got back from South Beach, and he said there were a couple of great golf
courses nearby.
She paused. Have you ever thought about going to Africa?
Africa?
Yeah. Just taking off for a while, going on safari, seeing Victoria Falls? Or i
f not Africa, someplace in Europe? Like Greece?
Not really. And even if I wanted to, it s not like I could get the time off. What
made you think of that?
No reason, she said.
While Gabby was on the phone, Travis walked up onto Gabby s porch and knocked. A
moment later, she appeared in the doorway, the phone to her ear. Motioning to t
he phone, she waved him inside. He stepped into the living room, expecting her t
o make some excuse on the phone, but instead she pointed to the couch and vanish
ed into the kitchen, the swinging doors swaying behind her.
He took a seat and waited. And waited. And waited. He felt ridiculous, as if s
he were treating him like a child. He could hear her speaking in hushed tones an
d had no idea whom she was talking to, and he contemplated getting up and walkin
g out the door. Still, he remained on the couch, wondering why she seemed to hav
e such a hold over him.
Finally, with the doors swinging behind her again, she stepped into the living
room.
I m sorry. I know I m a little late, but the phone s been ringing off the hook all mo
rning.
Travis stood, thinking that Gabby had grown even prettier overnight, which mad
e no sense at all. No big deal, he answered.
The call with Kevin left her wondering again what she was doing, and she wille
d herself to stop thinking about it. Let me just get my things, and we ll be good t
o go. She took a step toward the door. Oh, and I want to check on Molly-she was fi
ne this morning, but I want to make sure she has plenty of water.
A moment later, with her bag flung over her shoulder, they moved into the gara
ge and filled the water bowl to the brim.
Where are we going, by the way? she asked on their way back out. Not to some bike
r bar out in the sticks, I hope?
What s wrong with biker bars?
I wouldn t fit in. Not enough tattoos.
You re generalizing, don t you think?
Probably. But you still haven t answered my question.
Just a ride, he said. Over the bridge, all the way down Bogue Banks to Emerald Is
le, back over the bridge, and then we ll wind our way back to this place I want to
show you.
Where?
It s a surprise.
Is it a fancy place?
Hardly.
Can we eat there?
He thought about it. Sort of.
Is it inside or outside?
It s a surprise, he said. I don t want to ruin it for you.
It sounds exciting.
Don t build it up too much. It s just this place I like to go-nothing spectacular.
By that time, they d reached the drive. Travis motioned toward the bike. This is
it.
The chrome on the bike made Gabby squint, and she put on a pair of sunglasses.
Your pride and joy?
Frustration and angst.
You re not going to start whining about how hard it is to get parts again, are yo
u?
He made a face, then chuckled. I ll try to keep it to myself.
She motioned toward the basket he d attached to the back of the bike with bungee
cords. What s for lunch?
The usual.
Filet mignon, baked Alaska, roast lamb, Dover sole?
Not quite.
Pop-Tarts?
He ignored her gibe. If you re ready, we can go. I m pretty sure the helmet will fi
t you, but if it doesn t, I ve got more in the garage.
She raised a sardonic eyebrow. What about this special place? Have you taken a
lot of different women there?
No, he said. Actually, you ll be the first.
She waited to see if he would add anything else, but for once he seemed seriou
s. She nodded slightly and walked to the motorcycle. She put on her helmet, fast
ened it beneath her chin, and threw her leg over the back of the seat. Where do I
put my feet?
Travis unfolded the rear pegs. There s one on each side. And try not to touch the
exhaust with your leg. It gets very hot and you could get a nasty burn.
Good to know. What about my hands?
They ll be around me, of course.
Such a ladies man, she said. Why, if you were any smoother, I probably wouldn t even
be able to hold on, would I?
He put on his helmet and in a single, smooth motion climbed on and started the
bike, allowing it to idle. It was quieter than some motorcycles, but she could
feel the slight vibration through her seat. She felt a distinct anticipatory thr
ill, as if she were seated on a roller coaster as it was about to start, only th
is time without a seat belt.
Travis eased the motorcycle forward, out of the drive, and onto the street. Ga
bby reached for his hips, but as soon as she touched him, she thought about his
hip flexors, which made her stomach do a flip-flop. It was either that or wrap h
er arms around him, and she didn t feel ready for that. As the motorcycle began to
accelerate, she told herself not to squeeze, not to move her hands at all, just
to keep her hands steady, like a statue.
What s that? Travis asked, craning his neck.
What?
You said something about hands and a statue?
Unaware she d spoken aloud, she squeezed his hips, telling herself that she was
doing it only to provide cover. I said keep your hands steady, like a statue. I d
on t want to crash.
We re not going to crash. I don t like crashing.
Have you ever crashed before?
Continuing to crane his neck and making her nervous by doing so, he nodded. A c
ouple of times. Spent two nights in the hospital once.
And you didn t think this was important to mention before you invited me?
I didn t want you to get scared.
Just keep your eyes on the road, okay? And don t do anything fancy.
You want me to do something fancy?
No!
Good, because I d rather just enjoy the ride. He craned his neck again; despite th
e helmet, she could swear she saw him wink. The most important thing is to keep y
ou safe, so just keep your hands steady like a statue, okay?
On the back of the seat, Gabby felt herself shrink, just as she had in his off
ice, aghast that she d said those words aloud. And that despite the wind in their
faces and the roar of the engine, Travis had actually heard them. There were mom
ents when it honestly seemed as if the world were conspiring against her.
That he didn t bring it up again over the next few minutes made her feel slightl
y better. With the motorcycle zipping along, they left the quiet confines of the
ir neighborhood. Gabby slowly got the hang of leaning when Travis leaned, and a
few turns later, they were making their way through Beaufort and over the small
bridge that separated them from the Morehead City limits. The road widened to tw
o lanes and was clogged with weekend beach traffic. Gabby tried to ignore the fe
eling of vulnerability as they rode alongside a gigantic dump truck.
They veered toward the bridge that crossed the Intracoastal Waterway, and the
traffic slowed to a crawl. When they reached the highway that bisected Bogue Ban
ks, the traffic headed for Atlantic Beach evaporated and Travis gradually began
to pick up speed. Sandwiched between two minivans, one in front and the other be
hind them, Gabby felt herself relaxing. As they sped past condominiums and house
s hidden amid the Maritime Forest, she could feel the heat of the sun beginning
to soak through her clothing.
She held Travis to keep herself steady, intensely conscious of the outline of
his back muscles through the thin fabric of his shirt. Despite her best intentio
ns, she was beginning to accept the reality of the attraction she felt for him.
He was so different from her, yet in his presence she felt the possibility of an
other kind of life, a life she had never imagined could be hers. A life without
the rigid limitations others had always set for her.
They drifted in an almost dreamlike silence past one town, then another: Atlan
tic Beach, Pine Knoll Shores, and Salter Path. On her left, largely hidden from
view by oaks bent by the never-ending wind, lay some of the most desirable ocean
front property in the state. A few minutes earlier, they d bypassed the Iron Steam
er Pier. Though warped from years of storms, today it was home to scores of peop
le fishing.
At Emerald Isle, the most westerly town on the island, Travis applied the brak
es to slow for a turning car, and Gabby felt herself lean into him. Her hands in
advertently slid from his hips to his stomach, and she wondered if he noticed th
e way their bodies were pressed together. Though she willed herself to pull away
, she didn t.
There was something happening here, something she didn t quite understand. She l
oved Kevin and wanted to marry him; in the past couple of days, that feeling had
n t changed at all. And yet . . . she couldn t deny that spending time with Travis s
eemed . . . right, somehow. Natural and easy, the way things were supposed to be
. It seemed an impossible contradiction, and as they crossed the bridge at the f
ar end of the island, heading toward home, she gave up trying to resolve it.
Surprising her, Travis slowed the bike before turning onto a partially hidden
one-lane road perpendicular to the highway that stretched into the forest. When
he brought the bike to a halt, Gabby turned from side to side, puzzled.
Why are we stopping? she asked. Is this the place you wanted to show me?
Travis got off the bike and removed his helmet. He shook his head.
No, that s back in Beaufort, he said. I wanted to see if you d like to try driving fo
r a bit.
I ve never driven a motorcycle. Gabby crossed her arms, remaining on the bike.
I know. That s why I asked.
I don t think so, she said, pushing up the helmet visor.
C mon, it ll be fun. I ll be right behind you on the bike, and I m not going to let you
crash. I ll have my hands right next to yours, I ll do all the shifting. All you ll h
ave to do is steer until you get used to it.
But it s illegal.
A technicality. And besides, this is a private road. It leads to my uncle s place
-a little way up, it turns into a dirt road, and he s the only one who lives that
way. It s where I learned to ride.
She hesitated, torn between excitement and terror, amazed that she was actuall
y considering it.
Travis raised his hands. Trust me-there aren t any cars on the road, no one s going
to stop us, and I ll be right there with you.
Is it hard?
No, but it takes a little getting used to.
Like riding a bike?
As far as the balance goes. But don t worry. I ll be right there, so nothing can go
wrong. He smiled. You up for this?
Not really. ButGreat! he said. First things first. Slide forward, okay? On your right handlebar
is the throttle and the front brake. On the left is the clutch. The throttle gov
erns your speed. Got it?
She nodded.
Your right foot controls the back brake. You use your left foot to shift the ge
ars.
Easy.
Really?
No. Just making you feel better about your teaching skills.
She was beginning to sound like Stephanie, he thought. After that, the shifting
is kind of like driving a manual car. You let off the throttle, engage the clut
ch, shift, and then throttle up again. But I m going to show you, okay? But to do
that, we re kind of going to be sandwiched together. My arms and legs aren t long en
ough to reach from the backseat.
A convenient excuse, she said.
Which just happens to be true. You ready for this?
I m scared out of my wits.
I ll take that as a yes. Now, scoot up a bit.
She slid forward, and Travis got on. After putting on his helmet, he wedged up
against her, reaching for the handlebars, and despite his warning, she felt som
ething jump inside, a light shock that started in her stomach and radiated outwa
rd.
Now just put your hands on top of mine, he instructed. And do the same with your
feet. I just want you to feel what s happening. It s kind of a rhythm thing, but onc
e you get the hang of it, you ll never forget.
Is this how you learned?
No. My friend stood off to the side, yelling instructions. My first time out, I
squeezed the clutch instead of the brake and ended up crashing into a tree. Whi
ch is why I want to be right here your first time out. He lifted the kickstand, e
ngaged the clutch, and started the engine; as soon as it began to idle, she felt
the same fluttery nerves she d felt the moment before the parasail lifted her fro
m the boat. She put her hands on his, relishing the feel of him against her.
You ready?
As I ll ever be.
Keep your hands light, okay?
Travis turned the throttle and slowly eased out the clutch; in the instant the
motorcycle began to move, he lifted his foot from the ground. Gabby allowed her
foot to settle lightly on his.
They went slowly at first, Travis accelerating gradually, then easing off, acc
elerating again, and finally shifting to another gear before slowing again and c
oming to a stop. Then they started over again, Travis carefully explaining what
he was doing-using the brake or getting ready to shift and reminding her never t
o squeeze the front brake in panic or she d go flying over the handlebars. Little
by little, as the process continued, Gabby got the hang of it. The choreographed
movement of his hands and feet struck her as something akin to playing the pian
o, and after a few minutes, she could almost anticipate what he was going to do.
Even so, he continued to guide her until the movements felt almost second natur
e.
With that, he had them switch places; her hands and feet were now on the contr
ols, with his atop hers, and they repeated the process from the beginning. It wa
sn t as easy as he d made it seem. At times the motorcycle jerked or she squeezed th
e hand brake too hard, but he was patient and encouraging. He never raised his v
oice, and she found herself recalling the way he d been with the toddlers at the b
each the day before. There was, she admitted, more to Travis than she had initia
lly realized.
Over the next fifteen minutes, as she continued to practice driving, his touch
became even lighter, until finally he let go entirely. Though she wasn t entirely
comfortable, she began to accelerate faster and more smoothly, and braking came
just as naturally. For the first time, she felt the power and freedom the motor
cycle offered.
You re doing fantastic, Travis said.
This is great! she cried, feeling almost giddy.
Are you ready to try riding solo?
You re kidding.
Not at all.
She debated only an instant. Yeah, she said enthusiastically. I think I am.
She brought the bike to a stop, and Travis hopped off. After watching him step
back, she took a deep breath, ignored the pounding in her chest, and got the mo
torcycle going. A moment later, she was zipping along. On her own, she stopped a
nd started a dozen times, gradually reducing the distances. Surprising Travis, s
he turned the bike around in a slow, wide arc and came racing back toward him. F
or a moment, he thought she was out of control, but she brought the bike to an e
legant stop only steps from him. Unable to stop grinning, she ran her words toge
ther with kinetic energy.
I can t believe I just did that!
You did great!
Did you see me turn around? I know I was going too slow, but I made it.
I saw that.
This is great! I can see why you love riding. It s a blast.
I m glad you enjoyed it.
Can I try it again?
He motioned to the road. Feel free.
She rode back and forth along the road for a long while, Travis watching her c
onfidence grow with every stop and start. Her turns were executed with greater e
ase as well-she even began driving in a circle-and by the time she stopped in fr
ont of him, her face was flushed. When she took off her helmet, Travis was sure
he d never seen anyone more alive and beautiful.
I m done, she announced. You can drive now.
You sure?
I learned a long time ago to quit while I m ahead. I d hate to crash and ruin this
feeling.
Gabby scooted back and Travis got on the bike, only to feel her wrap her arms
around him. As he wound his way back to the highway, Travis felt charged, as if
his senses had been put on overdrive, and he was acutely aware of the curves of
her body against his. They made their way up the highway, turned, and cut throug
h Morehead City, passing by the Atlantic Beach bridge and completing the loop on
their way back to Beaufort.
Minutes later, they were passing through the historic district, cruising past
restaurants and the marina on their way down Front Street. Travis finally slowed
the motorcycle, pulling onto a large grassy lot near the end of the block. The
empty lot bordered a weathered Georgian that was at least a hundred years old on
one side and an equally aged Victorian on the other. He turned off the engine a
nd removed his helmet.
Here we are, he said, ushering her off the bike. This is what I wanted to show yo
u.
There was something in his voice that kept her from making light of what seeme
d to be nothing more than a vacant lot, and for a moment, she simply watched Tra
vis as he walked a few steps in silence. He was staring across the road, toward
Shackleford Banks, his hands in his pockets. Removing her helmet and running a h
and through her matted hair, Gabby walked toward him. Reaching his side, she sen
sed he would tell her what this was all about when he was ready.
In my opinion, this place has one of the most beautiful views anywhere along th
e coast, he finally said. It s not like an ocean view, where all you see is waves an
d water stretching to the horizon. That s great, but after a while it gets boring,
because the view is always pretty much the same. But here, there s always somethi
ng to see. There are always sailboats and yachts streaming toward the marina; if
you come out here at night, you can see the crowds along the waterfront and lis
ten to the music. I ve seen porpoises and rays passing through the channel, and I
especially love to see the wild horses over on the island. I don t care how many t
imes I ve seen them, I m always amazed.
You come out here a lot?
Twice a week, maybe. This is where I come to think.
I m sure the neighbors are thrilled about that.
It s not like they can do anything about it. I own it.
Really?
Why do you sound so surprised when you say that?
I m not sure. I guess it just sounds so . . . domestic.
I do own a house already. . . .
And I hear your neighbor is terrific.
Yeah, yeah . . .
I just meant that buying a lot makes it sound like you re the kind of guy who has
long-term plans.
And you don t see me like that?
Well . . .
If you re trying to flatter me, you re not doing a very good job.
She laughed. How about this, then: You continually surprise me.
In a good way?
Every time.
Like when you brought Molly to the clinic and realized I was a veterinarian?
I d rather not talk about that.
He laughed. Then let s eat.
She followed him back to the motorcycle, where he unpacked the basket and a bl
anket. After leading her up a small incline toward the rear of the property, he
spread the blanket and motioned for her to sit. Once they were both comfortable,
he started removing Tupperware containers.
Tupperware?
He winked. My friends call me Mr. Domestic.
He pulled out two chilled cans of strawberry-flavored iced tea. After opening
hers, he handed it to her.
What s on the menu? she asked.
He pointed to various containers as he spoke. I ve got three different kinds of c
heese, crackers, Kalamata olives, and grapes-it s more a snack than a lunch.
Sounds perfect. She reached for the crackers and then sliced herself some cheese
. There used to be a house here, right? When she saw his surprise, she waved towar
d the houses on either side of the lot. I can t imagine that this particular spot h
as been vacant for a hundred fifty years.
You re right, he said. It burned down when I was a kid. I know you think Beaufort i
s small now, but when I grew up here, it wasn t more than a blip on the map. Most
of these historic homes had fallen into disrepair, and the one that had been her
e had been abandoned for years. It was a great big rambling kind of place with b
ig holes in the roof, and it was rumored to be haunted, which made it that much
more attractive to us when we were kids. We used to sneak over here at night. It
was like our fort, and we d play hide-and-seek for hours in the rooms. There were
tons of great hiding places. He pulled absently at some grass, as if reaching fo
r the memories. Anyway, one winter night, I guess a couple of vagrants lit a fire
inside to stay warm. The place went up in minutes, and the next day it was just
this smoldering pile. But the thing was, no one knew how to contact the man who
owned it. The original owner had died and left it to his son. The son died, and
he d left it to someone else, and so on, so that pile of rubble sat there for abo
ut a year until the town came in and bulldozed it away. The lot kind of got forg
otten after that, until I finally tracked down the owner in New Mexico and made
a lowball offer on it. He accepted it immediately. I doubt if he d ever been here,
and he didn t know what he was giving up.
And you re going to build a house here?
That s part of my long-term plan, anyway, being that I m so domestic and all. Travis
grabbed an olive and popped it into his mouth. You ready to tell me about your b
oyfriend yet?
Her mind flashed to the conversation she d had with Kevin earlier. What s your inte
rest?
I m just making conversation.
Gabby reached for an olive as well. Then let s talk about one of your previous gi
rlfriends instead.
Which one?
Any of them.
All right. One of them gave me some movie posters.
Was she pretty?
He considered his answer. Most people would say she was.
And what would you say?
I would say . . . that you re right. Maybe we shouldn t talk about this.
She laughed, then pointed to the olives. These are great, by the way. Everythin
g you brought is perfect.
He added cheese to another cracker. When does your boyfriend get back to town?
Are we back to this again?
I m just thinking of you. I don t want to get you in trouble.
I appreciate your concern, but I m a big girl. And not that it matters, but he ll b
e coming home on Wednesday. Why?
Because I ve enjoyed getting to know you these last couple of days.
And I ve enjoyed getting to know you.
But are you bummed it s coming to an end?
It doesn t have to come to an end. We ll still be neighbors.
And I m sure your boyfriend wouldn t mind if I took you out for another motorcycle
ride, or went for a picnic with you, or if you sat in the hot tub with me, right
?
The answer was obvious, and her expression became more serious. He probably wou
ldn t be too happy about it.
So it ll be ending.
We can still be friends.
He stared at her for a moment, then suddenly grabbed at his chest as if he d bee
n shot. You really know how to hurt a guy.
What are you talking about?
He shook his head. There s no such thing as being friends. Not with single men an
d women our age. It just doesn t work like that, unless you re talking about someone
you ve known for a very long time. Certainly not when it comes to strangers.
Gabby opened her mouth to respond, but there was really nothing to say.
And besides, he went on, I m not sure I want to be friends.
Why not?
Because most likely I d find myself wanting more than that.
Again, she said nothing. Travis watched her, unable to read her expression. Fi
nally he shrugged.
I don t think you d want to be friends with me, either. It wouldn t be good for your
relationship, since there s no doubt you d probably end up falling for me, too, and
in the end, you d do something you d regret. After that, you d blame me for it, and th
en after a while, you d probably end up moving, since the whole thing would be so
uncomfortable for you.
Is that so?
It s one of the curses of my life to be as charming as I am.
It sounds like you ve got the whole thing figured out.
I do.
Except for the part about me falling for you.
You can t see that happening?
I have a boyfriend.
And you re going to marry him?
As soon as he asks. That s why I moved here.
Why hasn t he asked you yet?
That s none of your business.
Do I know him?
Why are you so curious?
Because, he said, his eyes steady on hers, if I was him, and you moved up here to
be with me, I would ve already asked you.
She heard something in his tone that made her realize he was telling the truth
, and she looked away. When she spoke, her voice was soft. Don t ruin this for me,
okay?
Ruin what?
This. Today. Yesterday. Last night. All of it. Don t ruin it.
I don t know what you mean.
She took a deep breath. This weekend has meant a lot to me, if only because I f
inally felt I d made a friend. A couple of them, actually. I didn t realize how much
I d missed having friends in my life. Spending time with you and your sister remi
nded me of how much I left behind when I moved here. I mean, I knew what I was d
oing, and I m not sorry I made the decision I did. Believe it or not, I do love Ke
vin. She paused, struggling to order her thoughts. But it s hard sometimes. Weekends
like this most likely won t happen again, and I m partly reconciled to that, becaus
e of Kevin. But there s a part of me that doesn t want to accept that it s a onetime t
hing, even though we both know it is. She hesitated. When you say things like you
just said, and I know you don t mean them, it just trivializes everything I m going
through.
Travis listened intently, recognizing an intensity in her voice she hadn t allow
ed him to hear before. And though he knew he should have simply nodded and apolo
gized, he couldn t stop himself from responding.
What makes you think I didn t mean what I said? he countered. I meant every word. B
ut I understand that you don t want to hear it. Let me just say that I hope your b
oyfriend realizes how lucky he is to have someone like you in his life. He s a foo
l if he doesn t. I m sorry if that makes you uncomfortable, and I won t say it again. H
e grinned. But I had to say it once.
She looked away, liking what he had said despite herself. Travis turned toward
the water, allowing her the silence she needed; unlike Kevin, he always seemed
to know how to respond.
We should probably be heading back, don t you think? He motioned toward the bike. A
nd you should probably check on Molly.
Yeah, she agreed. That s probably a good idea.
They packed up the remains of the food and placed the containers back into the
basket, then folded up the blanket and retraced their steps to the motorcycle.
Over her shoulder, Gabby saw people beginning to crowd the restaurants for a lat
e lunch, and she found herself envying the simplicity of their choices.
Travis refastened the blanket and basket, then put on his helmet. Gabby did th
e same, and they pulled out of the lot a moment later. Gabby clung to Travis s hip
s, trying and failing to convince herself that he d said similar things to dozens
of different women in the past.
They pulled into her drive, and Travis brought the motorcycle to a halt. Gabby
let go of him and dismounted, removing her helmet. Standing before him, she fel
t an awkwardness she hadn t experienced since high school, a notion that seemed ri
diculous, and she had the feeling he was about to kiss her again.
Thanks for today, she said, wanting to preserve a little distance between them. A
nd thanks for the riding lesson, too.
My pleasure. You re a natural. You should consider getting your own bike.
Maybe one day.
In the silence, Gabby could hear the engine ticking in the heat. She handed Tr
avis the helmet, watching as he placed it on the seat.
Okay, then, he said. I guess I ll see you around?
Hard not to, us being neighbors and all.
Do you want me to check on Molly for you?
No, that s okay. I m sure she s doing fine.
He nodded. Hey, listen, I m sorry about what I said earlier. It wasn t my place to
pry like I did, or make you feel uncomfortable.
It s okay, she said. It didn t bother me at all.
Sure it didn t.
She shrugged. Well, since you were lying, I figured I d lie.
Despite the tension, he laughed. Do me a favor? If this whole boyfriend thing d
oesn t work out, give me a call.
I might just do that.
And on that note, I think I ll take my leave. He turned the handlebars and started
walking the motorcycle backward, getting into position to leave her drive. He w
as about to start the engine when he looked at her again. Would you have dinner w
ith me tomorrow night?
She crossed her arms. I can t believe you just asked me that.
A man s got to seize the moment. It s kind of my motto.
So I ve learned.
Is that a yes or a no?
She took a step backward, but in spite of her reservations, she found herself
smiling at his persistence. How about if I make you dinner tonight instead? At my
place. Seven o clock.
Sounds great, he said, and a moment later she was standing in the drive, wonderi
ng if she had taken temporary leave of her senses.
Thirteen
With the sun beating down mercilessly and the water from the hose icy cold, Tr
avis had a hard time keeping Moby in one place. The short leash didn t seem to hel
p much; Moby hated baths, which struck Travis as ironic, considering how much th
e dog loved to chase after tennis balls thrown into the ocean. On those occasion
s, Moby would bound through the waves, dog-paddling with fury, and showed no hes
itation about shoving his head underwater for a better grip if the tennis ball b
obbed away from him. But if he noticed Travis opening the drawer where his leash
was kept, Moby would seize the opportunity to explore the neighborhood for hour
s, usually returning long after dark.
Travis had grown used to Moby s tricks, which was why he d kept the leash out of s
ight until the last instant, then hooked it to Moby s collar before he could react
. Moby, as usual, had given him his best how could you do this to me? expression a
s he was being walked around back, but Travis had shaken his head.
Don t blame me. I didn t tell you to roll in dead fish, did I?
Moby loved to roll in dead fish, the more foul-smelling the better, and while
Travis was parking his motorcycle in the garage, Moby had trotted up happily wit
h his tongue hanging out, acting proud of himself. Travis had smiled for only an
instant before the stench hit and he noticed the disgusting chunks embedded in
Moby s fur. After giving Moby a tentative pat on the head, he had sneaked inside t
o change into shorts, tucking the leash in his back pocket.
Now out back, with the leash secured to the deck railing, Moby danced from sid
e to side, trying and failing to avoid getting even more wet than he already was
.
It s only water, you big baby, Travis scolded, although truthfully, he d been sprayi
ng Moby for almost five minutes. As much as he loved animals, he didn t want to st
art shampooing until all the . . . debris had been rinsed away. Dead fish parts
were disgusting.
Moby whined and continued to dance, tugging backward on the leash. When he was
finally ready, Travis set aside the hose and poured a third of the bottle of sh
ampoo on Moby s back. He scrubbed for a few minutes and rinsed, then sniffed the d
og and winced. They went through the process two more times, at which point Moby
was despondent. He fixed his eyes on Travis with a mournful expression that see
med to say, Don t you realize I rolled in fish guts as my personal gift to you?
Once Travis was satisfied, he brought Moby to another part of the deck and sec
ured him again. He d learned that if allowed to roam immediately after a bath, Mob
y would return to the scene of the crime as quickly as possible. His only hope w
as to keep him secured so long that he forgot about it. Moby shook away the exce
ss water and-realizing he was stuck-finally lay down on the deck with a grunt.
Afterward, Travis mowed the lawn. Unlike most of his neighbors, who rode their
lawn mowers, Travis still used a push mower. It took a little longer, but it wa
s not only decent exercise, he found the repetitive back-and-forth nature of the
activity relaxing. As he mowed, he kept glancing reflexively toward Gabby s house
.
A few minutes earlier, he d seen her leaving the garage and hop in her car. If s
he d noticed him, she hadn t shown it. Instead, she d simply backed out, then headed d
own the road toward town. He d never met anyone quite like her. And now she d invite
d him to dinner.
He didn t know what to make of that, and he d been trying to figure it out ever si
nce dropping her off. Most likely he d simply worn her down. Lord knows he d been oi
ling that wheel ever since they d met, but as he mowed, he found himself wishing t
hat he d been a bit more subtle about the whole thing. It would have made him feel
better about her dinner invitation, knowing that it hadn t been coerced somehow.
Wondering about all of this was new to him. But then again, he couldn t remember
the last time he d enjoyed himself so thoroughly with a woman. He d laughed more wi
th Gabby than he had with Monica or Joelyn or Sarah or anyone else he d dated in t
he past. Finding a woman with a sense of humor had been the one piece of advice
his father had given him when he d first begun to get serious about dating, and he
finally understood why his dad had considered it important. If conversation was
the lyrics, laughter was the music, making time spent together a melody that co
uld be replayed over and over without getting stale.
After finishing the lawn, he dragged the mower back to the garage, noting that
Gabby still hadn t returned. She d left the garage door cracked open, and Molly wan
dered out into the yard, then turned around and headed back inside.
Back in his kitchen, Travis downed a glass of iced tea in one long gulp. Knowi
ng better but not caring, he let his thoughts drift to Gabby s boyfriend. He wonde
red if Kevin was someone he knew. He found it odd that she d said so little about
him and that it had taken her so long simply to tell him his name. It would be e
asy to attribute it to something like guilt, except for the fact that she had sh
ied away from the topic from the beginning. He didn t know what to make of it, and
he wondered what the guy was like or what he had done to make Gabby fall in lov
e with him. In his mind s eye, images floated past-athletic, bookish, somewhere in
between-but none of them seemed exactly right.
Noting the time, he figured that he could get the parasail boat back to the ma
rina before showering and getting ready. He retrieved the boat key and headed ou
t the back slider, untied Moby, and watched as Moby raced past him down the step
s. Stopping at the edge of the dock, Travis motioned to the boat.
Yeah, go ahead. Get in.
Moby jumped into the boat, his tail darting to and fro. Travis followed him in
. Minutes later they were cruising down the creek, the wake leaving a trail that
pointed them in the right direction. Passing Gabby s house, he stole a look at he
r windows, thinking again about their upcoming dinner and wondering what would h
appen. He was, he realized for the first time in his dating life, nervous that h
e might do something wrong.
Gabby made the short drive to the grocery store and pulled into the crowded lo
t. It was always packed on Sundays, and she ended up parking in the far corner,
making her wonder why she d driven the car in the first place.
Slinging her purse over her shoulder, she got out of the car, located a cart,
and entered the store.
She d spotted Travis mowing the lawn earlier, but she d ignored him, needing someh
ow to feel more in control than she actually was. The nice, orderly little world
she d created had been thrown out of whack, and she desperately needed some time
to regain her composure.
Inside, Gabby made her way to the produce section, where she collected some fr
esh green beans and the makings for a salad. Moving quickly, she located a box o
f pasta and some croutons, then headed toward the rear of the store.
Knowing that Travis liked chicken, she put a packet of breasts in the cart, th
inking that a bottle of Chardonnay would go well with them. She wasn t sure whethe
r Travis liked wine-she somehow doubted it-but it sounded good to her, and she s
canned the limited selection for a winery that she recognized. There were two of
ferings from Napa Valley, but she chose something from Australia, thinking it so
unded a little more exotic.
The checkout lines were long and moving slowly, but at last she made it back t
o her car. Glancing in the rearview mirror, she caught an image of herself and p
aused for a moment, staring at herself as if through someone else s eyes.
How long had it been since someone besides Kevin had kissed her? As much as sh
e d tried to forget that little incident, she d found herself returning to it over a
nd over, like a forbidden secret.
She was drawn to Travis; she couldn t deny that. It wasn t just that he was handso
me and that he made her feel desirable. It had something to do with his natural
exuberance and the way he d made her feel a part of it; it was the fact that he ha
d lived a life that seemed so different from hers, yet they still spoke the same
language, a familiarity that belied the short period they had known each other.
She d never met someone like him before. Most people she d known, and certainly eve
ryone in her PA class, seemed to live their lives as if marking off goals on a s
core sheet. Study hard, get a job, get married, buy a house, have kids-and until
this weekend, she realized she d been no different. Somehow, compared with the ch
oices he d made and the places he d traveled, her life seemed so . . . banal.
But would she do it differently if she could? She doubted it. Her experiences
growing up had formed her into the woman that she d become, just as his experience
s had formed him, and she didn t regret them. And yet, as she turned the key and s
tarted the engine, she knew that wasn t the question that mattered. As the car idl
ed, she realized the choice before her was this: Where do I go from here?
It is never too late to change things. The thought frightened her even as it e
xcited her. A few minutes later, she was heading toward Morehead City, feeling a
s if somehow she d been given the chance to start over.
The sun had drifted across the sky by the time Gabby got home, and she spotted
Molly lying in the marsh grass, her ears perked up and tail thumping. She trott
ed toward Gabby as she opened the rear door, greeting her with a couple of slopp
y licks.
You seem almost back to normal, Gabby said. Your babies doing okay?
As if on cue, Molly began wandering that way.
Gabby reached for the bags and brought them inside, setting the groceries on t
he counter. It had taken her longer than she d anticipated, but she still had enou
gh time to get things started. She set a pot of water on the stove and set the b
urner on high for the pasta. While it was heating, she chopped the tomatoes and
cucumbers for the salad. She cut up the lettuce and mixed the ingredients togeth
er with a bit of cheese and the olives Travis had introduced her to the day befo
re.
She added the pasta to the water with a dash of salt, unwrapped the chicken, a
nd began to sauté it in olive oil, wishing she could have done something a
bit fancier. She added a bit of pepper and other seasonings, but by the end, it
looked almost as boring as it had before she started. Never mind, it would have
to do. She set the oven to warm, added some broth to the bowl along with the chi
cken, and set it inside, hoping that would be enough to keep it from drying out.
She drained the pasta and put it in a bowl in the fridge, planning to add a lit
tle flavoring to it later.
In her bedroom, she laid out some clothes and headed into the shower. The warm
water was luxurious. She shaved her legs, forcing herself not to rush so she wo
uldn t nick herself, washed and conditioned her hair, and finally stepped out and
dried off.
On the bed were a new pair of jeans and a beaded, low-cut shirt. She d chosen he
r outfit carefully, not wanting to dress too formally or casually, and these see
med just right. She dressed and then slipped on a new pair of sandals and a dang
ly pair of earrings. Stepping in front of the floor mirror, she turned from side
to side, pleased with the way she looked.
With time running out, she set out some candles throughout the house and was a
dding the last of them to the table when she heard Travis knocking. She stood st
raight, trying to compose herself, then made her way to the door.
Molly had wandered up to Travis, and he was scratching her behind the ears whe
n the door opened. He found himself unable to turn away. Nor could he find his v
oice. Instead, he stared wordlessly at Gabby, trying to sort through the jumble
of emotions that began to crowd his heart.
Gabby smiled at his obvious discomfiture. Come in, she said. I ve just about got ev
erything ready.
Travis followed her inside, trying not to stare as she walked ahead of him.
I was just about to open a bottle of wine. Would you like a glass?
Please.
In the kitchen, she reached for the bottle and opener as Travis stepped forwar
d.
I can get that for you.
I m glad you said that. I have a tendency to shred the cork, and I hate having pi
eces floating in my glass.
As he opened the bottle, Travis watched her retrieve two glasses from the cupb
oard. She set them on the counter, and Travis noted the label, feigning more int
erest than he felt, trying to steady his nerves.
I ve never had this kind before. Is it any good?
I have no idea.
Then I guess it ll be new for the both of us. He poured and handed one glass to he
r, trying to read her expression.
I wasn t sure what you wanted for dinner, she chatted on, but I knew that you liked
chicken. I have to warn you, though. I ve never been the chef in my family.
I m sure whatever you made will be fine. I m not that picky.
As long as it s plain, right?
That goes without saying.
Are you hungry? She smiled. It ll only take a few minutes to heat this up. . . .
He debated for a moment before leaning against the counter. Actually, could we
wait for a little while? I d like to enjoy my glass of wine first.
She nodded, and in the silence she stood before him, wondering what she was su
pposed to do next.
Would you like to go sit outside?
Love to.
They took a seat in the rockers she d placed near the door. Gabby took a sip of
her wine, glad for something to take the edge off her nerves.
I like your view, Travis said gamely, rocking back and forth with energy. It remi
nds me of mine.
Gabby laughed, feeling a little burst of relief. Unfortunately, I haven t learned
to enjoy it the way you do.
Very few people do. It s kind of a lost art these days, even in the South. Watchi
ng the creek flow by is a little like smelling the roses.
Maybe it s a small-town thing, she speculated.
Travis eyed her with interest. Tell me honestly, are you enjoying life in Beauf
ort? he asked.
It has its good points.
I hear the neighbors are terrific.
I ve only met one.
And?
He has a tendency to ask loaded questions.
Travis grinned. He loved her sense of play.
But to answer your question, she went on, yes, I do like it here. I like the fact
that it takes only a few minutes to get anywhere, it s beautiful, and for the mos
t part, I think I m learning to love the slower pace of life.
You make it sound like Savannah is as cosmopolitan as New York or Paris.
It isn t. She looked over her glass at him. But I will say that Savannah is definit
ely closer to New York than Beaufort. Have you ever been there?
I spent a week there one night.
Ha-ha. You know, if you re going to make a joke, you could try coming up with som
ething original.
That s too much work.
And you re averse to work, right?
Can t you tell? He leaned back in his rocker, the picture of ease. Tell me the trut
h, though. Do you think you ll ever move back?
She took a swallow of wine before answering. I don t think so, she said. Don t get me
wrong. I think it s a great place, and it s one of the most beautiful cities in the
South. I love the way the city was laid out. It has the most beautiful squaresthese lovely parks scattered every few blocks-and some of the houses that front
them are stunning. When I was a little girl, I used to imagine myself living in
one of them. For a long time, it was a dream of mine.
Travis stayed silent, waiting for her to continue. Gabby shrugged. But as I gre
w older, I began to realize that it was more my mom s dream than my own. She alway
s wanted to live in one of those homes, and I remember the way she used to badge
r my dad to put in an offer whenever one was for sale. My dad did well, don t get
me wrong, but I could tell it always bothered him that he couldn t afford one of t
he really grand houses, and after a while, it just rubbed me the wrong way. She p
aused. Anyway, I guess I wanted something different. Which led, of course, to col
lege and PA school and Kevin. And here I am.
From a distance, they heard Moby begin barking frantically, the sound followed
by the faint rustling of claws on bark. Glancing at the large oak tree near the
hedges, Travis watched as a squirrel raced up the trunk. Though he couldn t see h
im, he knew that Moby was still circling the oak, thinking that somehow the crit
ter would lose its grip. Noticing that Gabby had turned at the sound, Travis rai
sed his glass in that direction.
My dog is crazy about chasing squirrels. He seems to regard it as his life s purp
ose.
Most dogs do.
Does Molly?
No. Her owner has a bit more control over her, and she nipped that little probl
em in the bud before it got out of hand.
I see, Travis said with mock seriousness.
Over the water, the first brilliant act of the sun s descent was beginning. In a
nother hour the creek would turn golden, but for now there was something dark an
d mysterious about its brackish color. Beyond the cypress trees lining the bank,
Travis could see an osprey floating on updrafts and watched as a small motorboa
t loaded with fishing gear puttered past. It was captained by someone old enough
to be Travis s grandfather, and the gentleman waved. Travis returned the greeting
, then took another drink.
With all you said, I m curious as to whether you can imagine yourself staying in
Beaufort.
She thought about her answer, sensing there was more to the question than it a
ppeared.
I suppose that depends, she finally hedged. It s not exactly exciting, but on the o
ther hand, it s not a bad place to raise a family.
And that s important?
She turned toward him with a faint air of challenge. Is there anything more imp
ortant?
No, he agreed evenly, there isn t. I m evidence of that belief because I lived it. Be
aufort is the kind of place where Little League baseball generates more conversa
tion than the Super Bowl, and I like thinking that I can raise my kids where the
little world they live in is all they know. Growing up, I used to think that th
is was the most boring place in the world, but when I think back, I realize that
the corollary to that was that anything exciting meant that much more to me. I
never grew jaded, the way so many city kids do. He paused. I remember going fishin
g with my dad every Saturday morning, and even though my dad was just about the
worst fisherman who ever baited a hook, I found it thrilling. Now I understand t
hat for my dad, at least, it was all about spending time with me, and I can t tell
you how grateful I am for that. I like thinking that I can give my kids the sam
e kinds of experiences someday.
It s nice to hear you say something like that, Gabby said. A lot of people don t thin
k that way.
I love this town.
Not that, she said, smiling. I was talking about the way you wanted to raise your
kids. It seems like you ve given it a lot of thought.
I have, he conceded.
You always have a way of surprising me, don t you.
I don t know. Do I?
A little. The more I ve gotten to know you, the more you ve come to strike me as im
possibly well-adjusted.
I could say the same about you, he responded. Maybe that s why we get along so well
.
She stared at him, feeling the crackle of tension between them. You ready for d
inner yet?
He swallowed, hoping she couldn t sense his feelings for her. That sounds great, h
e forced out.
Taking their wineglasses, they returned to the kitchen. Gabby motioned for Tra
vis to sit at the table while she got things ready, and as he watched her move a
round the kitchen, he felt a sense of contentment settle upon him.
At dinner, he ate two pieces of chicken, enjoyed the green beans and the pasta
, and complimented Gabby extravagantly on her cooking, until she giggled, beggin
g him to stop. He asked her repeatedly about her childhood in Savannah, and she
finally relented, regaling him with a couple of girlhood stories that made them
both chuckle. In time, the sky turned gray and blue and finally black. The candl
es burned lower, and they poured the last of the wine into their glasses, both a
ware that they were sitting across from a person who just might change the cours
e of their lives forever if they weren t careful.
After dinner was over and Travis helped Gabby clean up, they retreated to the
couch, nursing their wine and sharing stories from their pasts. Gabby tried to i
magine Travis as a young boy, wondering also what she would have thought about h
im had they met during her high school or college years.
As the evening wore on, Travis inched closer, casually slipping his arm around
her. Gabby leaned into him, feeling snug against him, content to watch the play
of silver moonlight as it filtered through the clouds.
What are you thinking about? Travis asked at one point, breaking a particularly
long yet comfortable silence.
I was thinking how natural this whole weekend has seemed. Gabby looked at him. Li
ke we ve known each other forever.
I guess that means a couple of my stories were boring, huh?
Don t underestimate yourself, she teased. Lots of your stories were boring.
He laughed, pulling her tighter. The more I get to know you, the more you surpr
ise me. I like that.
What are neighbors for?
Is that still all I am to you? Just a neighbor?
She glanced away without responding, and Travis went on. I know it makes you un
comfortable, but I can t leave tonight without telling you that just being neighbo
rs isn t enough for me.
Travis . . .
Let me finish, okay? he said. Earlier today, when we talked, you told me how much
you d missed having friends around, and I ve been thinking about that ever since, b
ut not in the way that you probably imagine. It made me realize that even though
I have friends, I ve been missing something that all my friends do have. Laird an
d Allison, Joe and Megan, Matt and Liz, all have each other. I don t have that in
my life, and until you came along, I wasn t sure I even wanted it. But now . . .
She picked at the beadwork on her shirt, resisting his words and yet welcoming
them, too.
I don t want to lose you, Gabby. I can t imagine seeing you walk to your car in the
morning and pretending that none of this ever happened. I can t imagine not sitti
ng here with you on the couch, like we re doing now. He swallowed. And right now, I
can t imagine being in love with any other woman.
Gabby wasn t sure she d heard him right, but when she saw the way he was staring a
t her, she knew he meant it. And with that, she felt the last of her defenses fa
lling away and knew she had fallen in love with him as well.
The grandfather clock chimed in the background. Candlelight flickered on the w
alls, casting shadows around the room. Travis could sense the gentle rise and fa
ll of her chest as she breathed, and they continued to stare at each other, neit
her one of them able to speak.
The phone rang, shattering her thoughts, and Travis turned away. Gabby leaned
forward and reached for the portable phone. She answered, her voice betraying no
thing.
Oh, hey, how are you? . . . Not much . . . Uh-huh . . . I was running some erra
nds. . . . What s been going on there?
As she listened to Kevin s voice, a rush of guilt washed over her. Yet she found
herself reaching over and placing a hand on Travis s leg. He hadn t moved or made a
sound, and she could feel the muscles tense beneath his jeans as she ran her ha
nd along his thigh.
Oh, that s great. Congratulations. I m glad you won . . . sounds like you had fun.
. . . Oh, me? Nothing too exciting.
Hearing Kevin s voice while being so close to Travis was pulling her in two dire
ctions. She tried to concentrate and listen to Kevin, while sorting through what
had just happened with Travis. The situation was too surreal to absorb.
I m sorry to hear that. . . . I know, I get sunburned, too. . . . Uh-huh . . . uh
-huh . . . Yes, I ve thought about the trip to Miami, but I don t get any vacation d
ays until the end of the year. . . . Maybe, I don t know. . . .
She released Travis s leg and leaned back against the couch, trying to keep her
voice steady, wishing she hadn t answered, wishing he hadn t called. Knowing she was
only becoming more confused. We ll see, okay? We ll talk about it when you get back.
. . . No, nothing s wrong. I m just tired, I guess. . . . No, nothing to worry abou
t. It s been a long weekend. . . .
It wasn t a lie, but it wasn t the truth, either, and she knew it, which made her
feel even worse. Travis was staring downward, listening but pretending not to.
I will, she went on. Yeah, you, too . . . Uh-huh . . . yeah, I should be around.
. . . Okay . . . I do, too. And have fun tomorrow. Bye.
Hanging up the phone, she seemed preoccupied for a moment before leaning forwa
rd and putting the handset on the table. Travis knew enough not to say anything.
That was Kevin, she finally said.
I figured, Travis said, unable to read her expression.
He won the best ball tournament today.
Good for him.
Again, a silence descended between them.
I think I need some fresh air, she finally said, rising from the couch. She made
her way to the sliding glass door and stepped outside.
Travis watched her go, wondering if he should join her or whether she needed t
o be alone. From his spot on the couch, her image against the railing was shadow
ed. He could imagine heading out to join her, only to hear her suggest that it m
ight be best if he left, and though the thought frightened him, he needed to be
with her, now more than ever.
He made his way out the door and joined her against the rail. In the moonlight
, her skin was pearly, her eyes darkly luminous.
I m sorry, he said.
Don t be. There s nothing for you to be sorry for. She forced a smile. It s my fault,
ot yours. I knew what I was getting into.
Gabby could sense that he wanted to touch her, but she was torn about whether
she wanted him to. She knew she should end this, that she shouldn t let the evenin
g progress any further, but she couldn t break the spell that Travis s declaration h
ad cast over her. It didn t make sense. It took time to fall in love, more time th
an a single weekend, yet somehow, despite her feelings for Kevin, it had happene
d. She sensed Travis s nervousness as he stood beside her, and she watched him for
tify himself with a last sip of wine.
Did you mean what you said earlier? she asked. About wanting a family?
Yes, I did.
I m glad, she said. Because I think you d be a great father. I didn t tell you before,
but that s what I thought when I saw you with the kids yesterday. You seemed so na
tural with them.
I ve had a lot of experience with puppies.
Despite the tension, she laughed. She took a small step closer to him, and whe
n he turned to face her, she slipped her arms around his neck. She could hear th
e little voice inside warning her to stop, telling her that it still wasn t too la
te to end this. But another urge had taken hold of her, and she knew it was poin
tless to deny it.
Maybe so, but I thought it was sexy, she whispered.
Travis pulled her tight against him, noticing how her body seemed to fit again
st his. He could smell a trace of jasmine perfume on her, and as they stood hold
ing each other, his senses seemed to come alive. He felt as if he d reached the en
d of a long journey, unaware until this moment that Gabby had been his destinati
on all along. When he whispered, I love you, Gabby Holland, against her ear, he d ne
ver felt more sure about anything.
Gabby sank into him.
I love you, too, Travis Parker, she whispered, and as they stood in each other s a
rms, Gabby couldn t imagine wanting anything more than what was happening now, all
regrets and reservations swept aside.
He kissed her, then kissed her again and again, leisurely exploring her neck a
nd collarbone before rising to meet her lips once more. She ran her hands over h
is chest and shoulders, feeling the strength in the arms that held her, and when
he buried his fingers in her hair, she shivered, knowing that this was what the
weekend had been building toward all along.
They kissed on the deck for a long time. Finally she pulled back, and took his
hand to lead him inside, past the living room and toward the bedroom. She motio
ned toward the bed, and as Travis lay down, she pulled a lighter from the drawer
and proceeded to light the candles she d set out earlier. Her bedroom, dark at fi
rst, gave way to a flickering glow that bathed her in liquid gold.
With shadows accentuating her every movement, Travis watched as Gabby crossed
her arms, reaching for the hem of her shirt. With a single movement, she pulled
the shirt over her head. Her breasts pressed against the satin outline of her br
a, and her hands drifted slowly downward to the snap on her jeans. A moment late
r, she stepped out of the crumpled pile at her feet.
Travis was mesmerized as she moved toward the bed and playfully pushed him ont
o his back. She began to undo the buttons on his shirt and pulled it over his sh
oulders. As he wiggled his arms free, she undid the snap on his jeans, and a mom
ent later, he felt the heat from her belly as it slid against his own.
His mouth met hers with controlled passion. Her body felt right against his, m
ore right than anything she d ever known, like missing pieces in a puzzle finally
coming together.
Afterward, he lay beside her and said the words that had been echoing inside h
is head all night.
I love you, Gabby, he whispered. You are the best thing that s ever happened to me.
He felt her reach out for him.
I love you, too, Travis, she whispered, and upon hearing her words, he knew that
the solitary journey he d been on for years had somehow reached its end.
With the moon still high in the sky and the silver light illuminating the bedr
oom, Travis rolled over, knowing instantly that Gabby was gone. It was almost fo
ur in the morning, and after noting that she wasn t in the bathroom, he got up and
slipped on his jeans. He walked down the hall and peeked into the guest bedroom
before poking his head into the kitchen. All the lights were off, and he hesita
ted for a moment before noticing that the sliding glass door was cracked open.
He stepped out onto the small deck, catching sight of a shadowed figure leanin
g against the deck railing off to the side of the house. He took a hesitant step
toward her, unsure if she wanted to be alone.
Hey, he heard a voice call out in the darkness. Travis saw she was wearing the b
athrobe that had been hanging in the bathroom.
Hey there, he answered quietly. You okay?
I m fine. I woke up and tossed and turned for a while, but I didn t want to wake yo
u.
Stopping just short of her, he leaned against the rail as well, neither of the
m speaking. Instead, they simply watched the sky. Nothing seemed to be stirring;
even the crickets and frogs were silent.
It s so lovely out here, she finally said.
Yes, it is, he answered.
I love nights like this.
When she said nothing else, he moved closer and reached for her hand. Are you u
pset by what happened?
Not at all, she said, her voice clear. I don t regret any of it.
He smiled. What are you thinking about?
I was thinking about my dad, she mused, leaning into him. In a lot of ways, he re
minds me of you. You d like him.
I m sure I would, he said, uncertain where the conversation was going.
I was thinking about the way he must have felt when he met my mom for the first
time. What was going through his mind when he saw her, whether he was nervous,
what he said when he approached her.
Travis stared at her. And?
I have no idea.
When he laughed, she looped her arm through his. Is the hot tub at your place s
till warm? she asked.
Should be. I haven t checked it, but I m sure it s okay.
Do you want to go for a dip?
I d have to get my suit, but that sounds great.
She squeezed him tight against her, then leaned toward his ear. Who said you ne
eded a suit?
Travis said nothing as they crossed the yard to his hot tub. As he lifted off
the cover, he saw her bathrobe slip from her shoulders and glimpsed her naked bo
dy, knowing how much he loved her and that these last couple of days were someho
w going to mark his life forever.
Fourteen
Though they both returned to work on Monday, over the next two days Travis and
Gabby spent every free moment together. They made love on Monday morning before
work, had lunch together at a small, family-owned café in Morehead City, a
nd that evening, with Molly feeling better, they took both dogs for a walk on th
e beach near Fort Macon. As they walked, holding hands, Moby and Molly wandered
the beach ahead like two old friends who d grown used to their differences. When M
oby chased terns and charged toward flocks of seagulls, Molly would hold her cou
rse, acting as if she wanted no part of it. After a while, Moby would realize th
at Molly was no longer alongside him and would bound back to her, and the two wo
uld trot happily together until Moby went nuts again and the whole thing repeate
d itself.
That s kind of like the way we are, huh? Gabby remarked as she squeezed Travis s han
d. One always chasing excitement, the other holding back?
Which one am I?
She laughed and leaned into him, resting her head on his shoulder. Stopping, h
e took her in his arms, amazed and terrified by the strength of his feelings. Bu
t when she lifted her face to kiss him, he felt his fears begin to melt away, re
placed by a growing sense of completion. He wondered whether love felt like this
for everyone.
Afterward, they stopped at the grocery store. Neither of them was very hungry,
so Travis picked up the makings for a chicken Caesar salad. In the kitchen, he
grilled the chicken and watched Gabby rinse the lettuce leaves at the sink. Curl
ed up on the couch after dinner, Gabby told Travis more about her family, arousi
ng a mixture of sympathy for Gabby and anger at her mother for failing to recogn
ize what an incredible woman Gabby had become. That night, they lay intertwined
in each other s arms until long after midnight.
On Tuesday morning, Travis was at her side just as she was beginning to stir.
She cracked open an eye.
Is it time to get up?
I guess so, he mumbled.
They lay facing each other without moving before Travis went on. You know what
sounds good? Fresh coffee and a cinnamon roll.
Yum, she said. Too bad we don t have time. I ve got to be at the office at eight. You
shouldn t have kept me awake so long last night.
Just close your eyes and wish real hard, and maybe your wish will come true.
Too tired to do anything else, she did what he suggested, longing for just ano
ther couple of minutes in bed.
And there it is! she heard him say.
What? she mumbled.
Your coffee. And a cinnamon roll.
Don t tease me. I m starved.
It s right there. Roll over and see for yourself.
She struggled to sit up and saw two steaming cups of coffee and a mouthwaterin
g cinnamon roll on a plate on the nightstand.
When did you . . . I mean, why did you . . . ?
A few minutes ago. He grinned. I was awake anyway, so I raced downtown.
She reached for both the coffees and handed one to him, smiling. I d kiss you rig
ht now, but this smells great and I m starved. I ll kiss you later.
In the shower, maybe?
There s always a catch with you, isn t there?
Be nice. I just brought you breakfast in bed.
I know, she said with a wink. She reached for her roll. And I m going to enjoy it.
On Tuesday evening, Travis took Gabby out on the boat, where they watched the
sun go down from the waters off Beaufort. Gabby had been quiet ever since she d re
turned home from work, which was why he d suggested it; it was his way of trying t
o put off the conversation he knew was coming.
An hour later, seated on Travis s deck with Molly and Moby lying at their feet,
Travis finally gave in to the inevitable.
What s going to happen next? he asked.
Gabby rotated the water glass in her hands. I m not sure, she said in a low voice.
Do you want me to talk to him?
It s not that simple. She shook her head. I ve been trying all day to figure it out,
and I m still not sure what I m going to do, or even what I m going to say to him.
You re going to tell him about us, aren t you?
I don t know, she said. I really don t. She turned to Travis, her eyes filled with te
rs. Don t get mad at me. Please don t. Believe me when I say that I know how this mak
es you feel, because it makes me feel the same way. In the last few days, you ve m
ade me feel . . . alive. You make me feel beautiful and intelligent and wanted,
and no matter how hard I try, I ll never be able to tell you how much that s meant t
o me. But as intense as all this has been, as much as I care about you, we re not
the same people, and you re not facing the same kind of decision that I am. For yo
u, it s easy-we love each other, so we should be together. But Kevin is important
to me, too.
What about all those things you said? Travis asked, trying not to sound as scare
d as he felt.
He s not perfect, Travis. I know that. And no, things aren t great between us right
now. But I can t help thinking that it s partly my fault. Can t you see that? With hi
m, I have all these expectations, but with you . . . I don t have any. And if you
reversed the equation, would any of this have even happened? What if I had expec
ted you to marry me, but with him, I just allowed myself to enjoy being in the m
oment? You wouldn t have given me the time of day, and most likely I wouldn t have w
anted you to.
Don t say that.
But it s true, isn t it? Her smile was pained. That s what I was thinking about today,
even though it hurts me to say it. I love you, Travis, I really do. If I thought
of this as a weekend fling, I d put it behind me now and then go back to imaginin
g a future with Kevin. But it s not going to be that easy. I have to make a choice
between the two of you. With Kevin, I know what to expect. Or at least until yo
u came along, I thought I did. But now . . .
She paused, and Travis could see her hair moving slightly in the breeze. She h
ugged her arms tightly to her body.
We ve only known each other for a few days, and while we were on the boat, I foun
d myself wondering how many other women you d taken out like that. Not because I w
as jealous, but because I kept asking myself what brought those relationships to
an end. And then I started wondering whether you would feel the same way about
me in the future as you do right now, or whether this will just end up like all
your previous relationships. As much as we think we know each other, we don t. Or
at least, I don t. All I know is that I fell in love with you, and I ve never been m
ore frightened about anything in my entire life.
She stopped. Travis stayed silent, letting her words penetrate before saying a
nything.
You re right, he admitted. Your choice is different from mine. But you re wrong if yo
u think this was just a fling for me. I might have started out thinking along th
ose lines, but . . . He reached for her hand. That s not how it ended up. Spending t
ime with you showed me what I ve been missing in my life. The more time we spent t
ogether, the more I could imagine it lasting in the future. That s never happened
to me before, and I m not sure it ll ever happen again. I ve never been in love with a
nyone before you came along-not real love, anyway. Not like this, and I d be a foo
l if I let you slip away without a fight.
He ran a hand through his hair, drained.
I don t know what else I can tell you, other than that I can imagine spending the
rest of my life with you. I know that sounds crazy. I know we re just getting to
know each other, and even admitting what I just did might make you think I m nuts,
but I ve never been more sure about anything. And if you give me a chance-if you
give us a chance-I m going to live the rest of my life proving to you that you mad
e the right decision. I love you, Gabby. And not just for the person you are, bu
t for the way you make me think that we can be.
For a long moment, neither of them said anything. In the darkness, Gabby could
hear the crickets calling from the foliage. Her mind was whirling-she wanted to
run away, and she wanted to stay here forever, her warring instincts a reflecti
on of the impossible bind she d gotten herself into.
I like you, Travis, she said earnestly. Then, realizing how it sounded, she stru
ggled on. And I love you, too, of course, but hopefully you already know that. I
was just trying to tell you that I like the way you talk to me. I like the fact
that when you say something, I know that you really mean it. I like the fact tha
t I can tell when you re teasing or telling the truth and when you re not. It s one of
your more endearing qualities. She patted his knee. Now will you do something for
me?
Of course, he said.
No matter what I ask?
He hesitated. Yeah . . . I guess.
Will you make love to me? And not think it might be the last time it ever happe
ns?
That s two things.
She didn t dignify his answer with a response. Instead, she held out her hand to
him. As they moved toward the bedroom, she broke into the tiniest of smiles, fi
nally knowing what she had to do.
Part Two
Fifteen
February 2007
Travis tried to shake free of those memories from nearly eleven years ago, won
dering why they d resurfaced with such clarity. Was it because he was now old enou
gh to realize how unusual it was to fall in love so quickly? Or simply because h
e missed the intimacy of those days? He didn t know.
Lately, it seemed he didn t know a lot of things. There were people who claimed
to have all the answers, or at least the answers to the big questions of life, b
ut Travis had never believed them. There was something about the assurance with
which they spoke or wrote that seemed self-justifying. But if there were one per
son who could answer any question, Travis s question would be this: How far should
a person go in the name of true love?
He could pose the question to a hundred people and get a hundred different ans
wers. Most were obvious: A person should sacrifice, or accept, or forgive, or ev
en fight if need be . . . the list went on and on. Still, even though he knew th
at all these answers were valid, none would help him now. Some things were beyon
d understanding. Thinking back, he recalled events he wished he could change, te
ars he wished had never been shed, time that could have been better spent, and f
rustrations he should have shrugged off. Life, it seemed, was full of regret, an
d he yearned to turn back the clock so he could live parts of his life over agai
n. One thing was certain: He should have been a better husband. And as he consid
ered the question of how far a person should go in the name of love, he knew wha
t his answer would be. Sometimes it meant a person should lie.
And soon, he had to make his choice as to whether he would.
The fluorescent lights and white tile underscored the sterility of the hospita
l. Travis moved slowly down the corridor, certain that even though he d spotted Ga
bby earlier, she hadn t seen him. He hesitated, steeling himself to head over and
talk to her. It was the reason he d come, after all, but the vivid parade of memor
ies earlier had drained him. He stopped, knowing a few more minutes to collect h
is thoughts wouldn t make any difference.
He ducked into a small reception room and took a seat. Watching the steady, rh
ythmic movement in the corridor, he realized that despite the never-ending emerg
encies, the staff had a routine here, much as he had his own routines at home. I
t was inevitable for people to try to create a sense of normalcy in a place wher
e nothing was normal. It helped one get through the day, to add predictability t
o a life that was inherently unpredictable. His mornings were a case in point, f
or every one was the same. Six-fifteen alarm; a minute to get out of bed and nin
e minutes in the shower, another four minutes to shave and brush his teeth, and
seven minutes to get dressed. A stranger could set a watch by following his shad
owed movements through his windows. After that, he d hurry downstairs to pour cere
al; he d check backpacks for homework and make peanut-butter-and-jelly sandwiches
for lunches while his sleepy daughters ate their breakfast. At exactly quarter p
ast seven, they d troop out the door and he d wait with them at the end of the drive
way for the school bus to arrive, driven by a man whose Scottish accent reminded
him of Shrek. After his daughters got on and settled into their seats, he d smile
and wave, just as he was supposed to. Lisa and Christine were six and eight, a
bit young for first and third grade, and as he watched them venture out to start
another day, he often felt his heart clench with worry. Perhaps that was common
-people always said that parenting and worrying were synonymous-but recently his
worries had grown more pronounced. He dwelled on things he never had before. Li
ttle things. Ridiculous things. Was Lisa laughing at cartoons as much as she use
d to? Was Christine more subdued than normal? Sometimes, as the bus would pull a
way, he would find himself replaying the morning over and over, searching for cl
ues to their well-being. Yesterday he had spent half the day wondering whether L
isa had been testing him by making him tie her shoes or whether she had just bee
n feeling lazy. Even though he knew he was bordering on obsession, when he d crept
to their rooms last night to adjust their strewn-about blankets, he couldn t stop
himself from wondering whether the nighttime restlessness was new or something
he d just never noticed before.
It shouldn t have been like this. Gabby should have been with him; Gabby should
have been the one tying shoes and adjusting the blankets. She was good at things
like that, as he d known she would be from the very beginning. He remembered that
in the days that followed their first weekend together, he would find himself s
tudying Gabby, knowing on some deep level that even if he spent the rest of his
life looking, he d never find a better mother or more perfect complement to him. T
he realization often hit in the strangest of places-while pushing the cart in th
e fruit aisle of the grocery store or standing in line to buy movie tickets-but
whenever it happened, it made something as simple as taking her hand an exquisit
e pleasure, something both momentous and gratifying.
Their courtship hadn t been quite as uncomplicated for her. She was the one torn
between two men vying for her love. A minor inconvenience, was the way he describ
ed it at parties, but he often wondered when exactly her feelings for him finall
y overwhelmed those she d had for Kevin. Was it when they sat beside each other, g
azing at the nighttime sky, and she quietly began naming the constellations she
recognized? Or was it the following day, when she held him tight as they rode on
the motorcycle before their picnic? Or was it later that evening, when he took
her in his arms?
He wasn t sure; capturing a specific instant like that was no more possible than
locating a specific drop of water in the ocean. But the fact remained that it l
eft Gabby to explain the situation to Kevin. Travis could remember her pained ex
pression on the morning she knew Kevin would be arriving back in town. Gone was
the certainty that had guided them the previous days; in its place was the reali
ty of what lay ahead for her. She barely touched her breakfast; when he kissed h
er good-bye, she responded with only the flicker of a smile. The hours had crawl
ed by without word, and Travis busied himself at work and made calls to find hom
es for the puppies, knowing it was important to her. Eventually, after work, Tra
vis went to check on Molly. As if sensing she d be needed later, she didn t return t
o the garage after he let her out. Instead, she lay in the tall marsh grass that
fronted Gabby s property, staring toward the street as the sun sank lower in the
sky.
It was well after dark when Gabby turned in the drive. He remembered the stead
y way she looked at him as she stepped out of the car. Without a word, she took
a seat beside him on the steps. Molly wandered up and began to nuzzle her. Gabby
ran her hand rhythmically through her fur.
Hey, he said, breaking the silence.
Hey. Her voice sounded drained of emotion.
I think I found homes for all of the puppies, he offered.
Yeah?
He nodded, and the two of them sat together without speaking, like two people
who d run out of things to talk about.
I m always going to love you, he said, searching and failing to find adequate word
s to comfort her.
I believe you, she whispered. She looped her arm through his and leaned her head
against his shoulder. That s why I m here.
Travis had never liked hospitals. Unlike the veterinary clinic, which closed i
ts doors around dinnertime, Carteret General Hospital struck him as the endless
turning of a Ferris wheel, with patients and employees hopping on and off every
minute of every day. From where he was sitting, he could see nurses bustling in
and out of rooms or clustering around the station at the end of the hall. Some w
ere frazzled while others seemed bored; the doctors were no different. On other
floors, Travis knew that mothers were giving birth and the elderly were passing
away, a microcosm of the world. As oppressive as he found it, Gabby had thrived
working here, energized by the steady buzz of activity.
There d been a letter in the mailbox months earlier, something from the administ
rator s office announcing that the hospital planned to honor Gabby s tenth year work
ing at the hospital. The letter didn t allude to anything specific that Gabby had
accomplished; it was nothing more than a form letter, something no doubt sent ou
t to a dozen other people who d started working around the same time she had. A sm
all plaque, the letter promised, would be hung in Gabby s honor in one of the corr
idors, along with other recipients , though as yet it hadn t happened.
He doubted that she cared. Gabby had taken the job at the hospital not because
she might one day receive a plaque, but because she d felt she hadn t much choice.
Though she had alluded to some problems at the pediatrician s office during their
first weekend together, she hadn t been specific. He d let the comment pass without
pressing her, but he knew even then that the problem wasn t simply going to go awa
y.
Eventually, she told him about it. It was the end of a long day. He d been calle
d out the previous night to the equestrian center, where he found an Arabian swe
ating and pawing the ground, its stomach tender to the touch. Classic signs of e
quine colic, though with a bit of luck, he didn t think it would require surgery.
Still, with the owners in their seventies, Travis wasn t comfortable asking them t
o walk the horse for fifteen minutes every hour, in case the horse became more a
gitated or took a turn for the worse. Instead, he decided to stay with the horse
himself, and though the horse gradually improved as the day rolled on into the
next evening, he was exhausted by the time he left.
He arrived home, sweaty and filthy, to find Gabby crying at her kitchen table.
It took a few minutes before she was able to tell him the story-how she d had to
stay late with a patient who was waiting for an ambulance for what she was fairl
y certain was appendicitis; by the time she was able to leave, most of the staff
had gone home. The attending physician, Adrian Melton, had not. They left toget
her, and Gabby didn t realize that Melton was walking with her toward her car unti
l it was too late. There, he laid a hand on her shoulder and told her that he wa
s heading to the hospital and would update her on the patient s condition. When sh
e forced a smile, however, he leaned in to kiss her.
It was a clumsy effort, reminiscent of high school, and she recoiled before he
could finish. He stared at her, seemingly put out. I thought this was what you w
anted, he d said.
At the table, Gabby shuddered. He made it sound like it was my fault.
Has it happened before?
No, not like this. But . . .
When she trailed off, Travis reached over and took her hand. Come on, he said. It s
me. Talk to me.
Her gaze remained focused on the surface of the table, but her voice was stead
y as she recounted the history of Melton s behavior. By the time she finished, his
face was tight with barely suppressed rage.
I ll fix this, he said without waiting for a response.
It took two phone calls to find out where Adrian Melton lived. Within minutes,
his car screeched to a stop in front of Melton s house. His insistent finger on t
he doorbell brought the doctor to the front door. Melton barely registered his p
uzzlement before Travis s fist crashed into his jaw. A woman Travis assumed was Me
lton s wife materialized the same instant Melton hit the floor, and her screams ec
hoed in the hallway.
When the police arrived at the house, Travis was arrested for the first and on
ly time in his life. He was brought to the station, where most of the officers t
reated him with amused respect. Every one of them had brought their pets to the
clinic and were clearly skeptical of Mrs. Melton s claim that some psycho has assau
lted my husband!
When Travis called his sister, Stephanie showed up looking less worried than a
mused. She found Travis sitting in a single cell, deep in discussion with the sh
eriff; as she approached, he realized they were talking about the sheriff s cat, w
ho seemed to have developed a rash of some sort and couldn t stop scratching.
Bummer, she said.
What?
And here I thought I was going to find you wearing an orange jumper.
Sorry to disappoint you.
Maybe there s still time. What do you think, Sheriff?
The sheriff didn t know what to think, and a moment later, he left them alone.
Thanks for that, Travis said once the sheriff was gone. He s probably considering y
our suggestion.
Don t blame me. I m not the one attacking doctors on doorsteps.
He deserved it.
I m sure he did.
Travis smiled. Thanks for coming.
I wouldn t have missed it, Rocky. Or would you prefer I call you Apollo Creed?
How about you work on getting me out of here instead of trying to come up with
nicknames?
Coming up with nicknames is more fun.
Maybe I should have called Dad.
But you didn t. You got me. And trust me, you made the right choice. Now let me g
o talk to the sheriff, okay?
Later, while Stephanie was talking to the sheriff, Adrian Melton visited Travi
s. He d never met the local veterinarian and demanded to know the reason for Travi
s s assault. Though he never told Gabby what he said, Adrian Melton promptly dropp
ed the charges, despite protests from Mrs. Melton. Within a few days, Travis hea
rd through the small-town grapevine that Dr. and Mrs. Melton were in counseling.
Nonetheless, the workplace remained tense for Gabby, and a few weeks later, Dr.
Furman called Gabby into the office and suggested that she consider trying to f
ind another place to work.
I know it s not fair, he said. And if you stay, we ll somehow make it work. But I m si
ty-four, and I m planning to retire next year. Dr. Melton has agreed to buy me out
, and I doubt that he ll want to keep you on anyway, or that you d want to work for
him. I think it would be easier and better for you if you take the time to find
a place where you re comfortable and simply put this awful thing behind you. He shr
ugged. I m not saying that his behavior wasn t reprehensible; it was. But even if he s
a jerk, he s the best pediatrician I interviewed and the only one who was willing
to practice in a small town like this. If you leave voluntarily, I ll write the fi
nest recommendation you can imagine. You ll be able to get a job anywhere. I ll make
sure of it.
She recognized the manipulation for what it was, and while her emotions cried
out for retribution on her behalf and that of sexually harassed women everywhere
, her pragmatic side asserted itself. In the end, she took a job in the emergenc
y room at the hospital.
There had been only one problem: When Gabby found out what Travis had done, sh
e d been furious. It was the first argument they had as a couple, and Travis could
still remember her outrage when she demanded to know whether he believed she wa
s grown-up enough to handle her own problems and why he acted as if she were some s
illy damsel in distress. Travis didn t bother trying to defend himself. In his hear
t, he knew he d do the same thing again in an instant, but he wisely kept his mout
h shut.
For all Gabby s outrage, Travis suspected there was part of her that had admired
what he d done. The simple logic of the act-He bothered you? Let me at im-had appe
aled to her, no matter how angry she d appeared, for later that night her lovemaki
ng had seemed particularly passionate.
Or at least, that s the way Travis remembered it. Had the evening unfolded exact
ly like that? He wasn t sure. These days, it seemed that the only thing he was cer
tain about was the knowledge that he wouldn t trade his years with Gabby for anyth
ing. Without her, his life had little meaning. He was a small-town husband with
a small-town occupation and his cares were no different from anyone else s. He d bee
n neither a leader nor a follower, nor had he been someone who would be remember
ed long after he passed away. He was the most ordinary of men with only one exce
ption: He d fallen in love with a woman named Gabby, his love deepening in the yea
rs they d been married. But fate had conspired to ruin all that, and now he spent
long portions of his days wondering whether it was humanly possible to fix thing
s between them.
Sixteen
Hey, Travis, said a voice from the doorway. I thought I d find you in here.
Dr. Stallings was in his thirties and made rounds every morning. Over the year
s, he and his wife had become good friends of Gabby and Travis s, and last summer
the four of them had traveled to Orlando with kids in tow. More flowers?
Travis nodded, feeling the stiffness in his back.
Stallings hesitated on the threshold of the room. I take it you haven t seen her
yet.
Kind of. I saw her earlier, but . . .
When he trailed off, Stallings finished for him. You needed some time alone? He
entered and took a seat beside Travis. I guess that makes you normal.
I don t feel normal. Nothing about this feels normal at all.
No, I don t suppose it does.
Travis reached for the flowers again, trying to keep his thoughts at bay, know
ing there were some things he couldn t talk about.
I don t know what to do, he finally admitted.
Stallings put his hand on Travis s shoulder. I wish I knew what to tell you.
Travis turned toward him. What would you do?
Stallings remained silent for a long moment. If I were in your position? He brou
ght his lips together, considering the questions, looking older than his years. I
n all honesty, I don t know.
Travis nodded. He hadn t expected Stallings to answer. I just want to do the righ
t thing.
Stallings brought his hands together. Don t we all.
When Stallings left, Travis shifted in his seat, conscious of the papers in hi
s pocket. Where once he d kept them in his desk, he now found it impossible to go
about his daily life without them nearby, even though they portended the end of
everything he held dear.
The elderly attorney who drafted them seemed to find nothing unusual about the
ir request. His small-town family law practice had been located in Morehead City
, close enough to the hospital where Gabby worked to be able to see it from the
windows of the paneled walls of the conference room. The meeting hadn t lasted lon
g; the lawyer explained the relevant statutes and offered a few anecdotal experi
ences; later Travis could remember only the loose, almost weak way he had graspe
d Travis s hand on his way out the door.
It seemed strange that those papers could signal the official end of his marri
age. They were codified words, nothing more, but the power afforded them now see
med almost malevolent. Where, he wondered, was the humanity in those phrases? Wh
ere was the emotion governed by these laws? Where was the acknowledgment of the
life they d led together, until everything went wrong? And why in God s name had Gab
by wanted them drawn up in the first place?
It shouldn t end like this, and it was certainly not an outcome he foresaw when
he d proposed to Gabby. He remembered their autumn trip to New York; while Gabby h
ad been at the hotel spa getting a massage and a pedicure, he d sneaked over to We
st 47th Street, where he d purchased the engagement ring. After dining at Tavern o
n the Green, they d taken a carriage ride through Central Park. And beneath a clou
dy, full-moon sky, he d asked for her hand in marriage and was overcome by the pas
sionate way she d wrapped her arms around him while whispering her consent over an
d over.
And then? Life, he supposed. In between her shifts at the hospital, she planne
d the wedding: Despite his friends warnings to simply go with the flow, Travis re
lished being part of the process. He helped her pick out the invitations, the fl
owers, and the cake; he sat beside her as she flipped through albums in downtown
studios, hoping to find the right photographer to memorialize the day. In the e
nd, they invited eighty people to a small, weathered chapel on Cumberland Island
in spring 1997; they honeymooned in Cancún, which ended up being an idylli
c choice for both of them. Gabby wanted someplace relaxing, and they spent hours
lying in the sun and eating well; he wanted a bit more adventure, so she learne
d to scuba dive and joined him on a day trip to see the nearby Aztec ruins.
The give-and-take of the honeymoon set the tone for the marriage. Their dream
house was constructed with little stress and was completed by their first annive
rsary; when Gabby ran her finger over the rim of her glass of champagne and wond
ered aloud whether they should start a family, the idea struck him as not only r
easonable, but something he desperately wanted. She was pregnant within a couple
of months, her pregnancy devoid of complications or even much discomfort. After
Christine was born, Gabby cut back on her hours and they worked out a schedule
that ensured one of them was always home with the baby. When Lisa followed two y
ears later, neither of them noticed much of a change, other than added joy and e
xcitement in the house.
Christmases and birthdays came and went, the kids grew out of one outfit only
to be replaced by the next. They vacationed as a family, yet Travis and Gabby al
so spent time alone, keeping the flame of romance alive between them. Max eventu
ally retired, leaving Travis to take over the clinic; Gabby limited her hours ev
en more and had enough time to volunteer at school. On their fourth anniversary,
they went to Italy and Greece; for their sixth, they spent a week on safari in
Africa. On their seventh, Travis built Gabby a gazebo in the backyard, where she
could sit and read and watch the play of light reflecting on the water. He taug
ht his daughters to wakeboard and ski when each was five years old; he coached t
heir soccer teams in the fall. On the rare occasions when he stopped to reflect
on his life, he wondered if anyone in the world felt as blessed as he did.
Not that things were always perfect. Years ago, he and Gabby had gone through
a rough patch. The reasons were fuzzy now, lost in the recesses of time, but eve
n then, there had never been a point when he truly believed their marriage to be
in jeopardy. Nor, he suspected, had she. Marriage, each of them realized intuit
ively, was about compromise and forgiveness. It was about balance, where one per
son complemented the other. He and Gabby had that for years, and he hoped they c
ould have it again. But right now they didn t, and the realization left him wishin
g there was something, anything, he could do to restore that delicate balance be
tween them.
Travis knew he couldn t postpone seeing her any longer, and he rose from his sea
t. Holding the flowers, he started down the corridor, feeling almost disembodied
. He saw a few nurses glance at him, and though he sometimes wondered what they
thought, he never stopped to ask. Instead, he summoned his nerve. His legs were
shaky, and he could feel the beginning of a headache, a dull throb at the back o
f his head. If he allowed himself to close his eyes, he felt sure he would sleep
for hours. He was falling apart, a thought that made about as much sense as a s
quare golf ball. He was forty-three, not seventy-two, and though he hadn t been ea
ting much lately, he still forced himself to go to the gym. You ve got to keep exer
cising, his dad had urged. If only for your own sanity. He d lost eighteen pounds in
the last twelve weeks, and in the mirror he could see that his cheeks had hollow
ed out. He reached the door and pushed it open, forcing himself to smile as he s
aw her.
Hi, sweetheart.
He waited for her to stir, waited for any response to let him know that things
were somehow returning to normal. But nothing happened, and in the long, empty
silence that followed, Travis felt an ache like a physical pain in his heart. It
was always like this. Stepping into the room, he continued to stare at Gabby as
if trying to memorize her every feature, though he knew it was a pointless exer
cise. He knew her face better than his own.
At the window, he opened the blinds, allowing sunlight to spill across the flo
or. There wasn t much of a view; the room overlooked a small highway that bisected
the town. Slow-moving cars drifted past fast-food restaurants, and he could ima
gine the drivers listening to music on the radio, or chatting on cell phones, or
heading to work, or making deliveries, or running errands, or going to visit fr
iends. People going about their daily lives, people lost in their own concerns,
all of them oblivious to what was going on in the hospital. He had once been one
of them, and he felt the loss of his previous life.
He set the flowers on the sill, wishing he had remembered to bring a vase. He
had chosen a winter bouquet, and the burnt orange and violet colors seemed muted
, almost mournful. The florist considered himself an artist of sorts, and in all
the years Travis had used him, he d never been disappointed. The florist was a go
od man, a kind man, and sometimes Travis wondered how much the florist knew abou
t their marriage. Over the years, Travis had purchased bouquets on anniversaries
and birthdays; he d purchased them as apologies or on the spur of the moment, as
a romantic surprise. And each time, he d dictated to the florist what he wanted wr
itten on the card. Sometimes he d recited a poem he d either found in a book or writ
ten on his own; at other times, he d come straight to the point and simply said wh
at was on his mind. Gabby had saved these cards in a tiny bundle held together b
y a rubber band. They were a kind of history of Travis and Gabby s life together,
described in tiny snippets.
He took a seat in the chair by the bed and reached for her hand. Her skin was
pale, almost waxy, her body seemed smaller, and he noted the spidery lines that
had begun to form at the corners of her eyes. Still, she was as remarkable to hi
m as she had been the first time he d ever seen her. It amazed him that he d known h
er almost eleven years. Not because the length of time was extraordinary, but be
cause those years seemed to contain more . . . life than the first thirty-two ye
ars without her. It was the reason he d come to the hospital today; it was the rea
son he came every day. He had no other choice. Not because it was expected-thoug
h it was-but because he couldn t imagine being anywhere else. They spent hours tog
ether, but their nights were spent apart. Ironically, there was no choice in tha
t, either, for he couldn t leave his daughters alone. These days, fate made all hi
s decisions for him.
Except for one.
Eighty-four days had passed since the accident, and now he had to make a choic
e. He still had no idea what to do. Lately he d been searching for answers in the
Bible and in the writings of Aquinas and Augustine. Occasionally he would find a
striking passage, but nothing more than that; he would close the cover of the b
ook and find himself staring out the window, his thoughts blank, as if hoping to
find the solution somewhere in the sky.
He seldom drove straight home from the hospital. Instead, he would drive acros
s the bridge and walk the sands of Atlantic Beach. He would slip off his shoes,
listening as the waves crashed along the shore. He knew his daughters were as up
set as he was, and after his visits to the hospital, he needed time to compose h
imself. It would be unfair to subject them to his angst. He needed his daughters
for the escape they afforded him. When focusing on them, he didn t focus on himse
lf, and their joy still held an unadulterated purity. They still had the ability
to lose themselves in play, and the sound of their giggling made him want to la
ugh and cry at the same time. Sometimes as he watched them, he was struck by how
much they resembled their mother.
Always they asked about her, but usually he didn t know what to tell them. They
were mature enough to understand that Mommy wasn t well and had to stay in the hos
pital; they understood that when they visited, it would seem as if Mommy were as
leep. But he couldn t bring himself to tell them the truth about her condition. In
stead, he would cuddle with them on the couch and tell them how excited Gabby ha
d been when she d been pregnant with each of them or remind them about the time th
e family played in the sprinklers for an entire afternoon. Mostly, though, they
would thumb through the photo albums Gabby had assembled with care. She was oldfashioned that way, and the pictures never ceased to bring a smile to their face
s. Travis would tell stories associated with each, and as he stared at Gabby s rad
iant face in the photos, his throat would tighten at the knowledge that he d never
seen anyone more beautiful.
To escape the sadness that overtook him in such moments, he would sometimes ra
ise his eyes from the album and focus on the large, framed photograph they d had t
aken at the beach last summer. All four of them had worn beige khakis and white
button-down oxfords, and they were seated amid the dune grass. It was the kind o
f family portrait common in Beaufort, yet it somehow struck him as entirely uniq
ue. Not because it was his family, but because he was certain that even a strang
er would find himself filled with hope and optimism at the sight, for the people
in the photo looked the way a happy family should.
Later, after the girls had gone to bed, he would put away the albums. It was o
ne thing to look at them with his daughters and tell stories in an attempt to ke
ep their spirits up, it was another thing to gaze at them alone. He couldn t do th
at. Instead, he would sit alone on the couch, weighed down by the sadness he fel
t inside. Sometimes Stephanie would call. Their conversations were filled with t
heir usual banter but it was somehow stilted at the same time, for he knew she w
anted him to forgive himself. Despite her sometimes flippant remarks and her occ
asional teasing, he knew what she was really saying: that no one blamed him, tha
t it wasn t his fault. That she and others were worried about him. To head off her
reassurances, he d always say that he was doing fine, even when he wasn t, for the
truth was something he knew she didn t want to hear: that not only did he doubt he d
ever be fine again, but he wasn t even sure he ever wanted to be.
Seventeen
Warm bands of sunlight continued to stretch toward them. In the silence, Travi
s squeezed Gabby s hand and winced at the pain in his wrist. It had been in a cast
until a month ago, and the doctors had prescribed painkillers. The bones in his
arms had fractured and his ligaments had torn in half, but after his first dose
, he d refused to take the painkillers, hating the woozy way they made him feel.
Her hand was as soft as always. Most days he would hold it for hours, imaginin
g what he would do if she squeezed his in return. He sat and watched her, wonder
ing what she was thinking or if she was thinking at all. The world inside her wa
s a mystery.
The girls are good, he began. Christine finished her Lucky Charms at breakfast, a
nd Lisa was close. I know you worry about how much they eat, since they re on the
small side, but they ve been pretty good about nibbling on the snacks I put out af
ter school.
Outside the window, a pigeon landed on the sill. It walked a few steps one way
, then back again, before finally settling in place as it did on most days. It s
eemed, somehow, to know when it was time for Travis to visit. There were times h
e believed it was an omen of sorts, though of what, he had no idea.
We do homework after dinner. I know you like to do it right after school, but t
his seems to be working out okay. You d be excited at how well Christine is doing
in math. Remember at the beginning of the year when she didn t seem to understand
it at all? She s really turned it around. We ve been using those flash cards you bou
ght pretty much every night, and she didn t miss a single question on her latest t
est. She s even doing her homework without me having to walk her through it. You d b
e proud of her.
The sound of the cooing pigeon was barely audible through the glass.
And Lisa s doing well. We watch either Dora the Explorer or Barbie every night. I
t s crazy how many times she can watch the same DVDs, but she loves them. And for
her birthday, she wants a princess theme. I was thinking about getting an ice-cr
eam cake, but she wants to have her party at the park, and I m not sure they d get t
o the cake before it melts, so I ll probably have to get something else.
He cleared his throat.
Oh, did I tell you that Joe and Megan are thinking of having another kid? I kno
w, I know-it s crazy considering how many problems she had with the last pregnancy
and the fact that she s already in her forties, but according to Joe, she really
wants to try for a little boy. Me? I think Joe s the one who wants a son and Megan s
just going along with it, but with those two, you never really know, do you.
Travis forced himself to sound conversational. Since she d been here, he d been tr
ying to act as naturally as he could around her. Because they talked incessantly
about the kids before the accident, because they discussed what was happening i
n their friends lives, he always tried to talk about them when he visited her. He
had no idea whether she heard him; the medical community seemed divided on that
. Some swore that coma patients could hear-and possibly remember-conversations;
others said just the opposite. Travis didn t know whom to believe, but he chose to
live his days on the side of the optimists.
For that same reason, after glancing at his watch, he reached for the remote.
In her stolen moments when she hadn t been working, Gabby s guilty pleasure was watc
hing Judge Judy on television, and Travis had always teased her about the way sh
e took an almost perverse delight in the antics of those unfortunate enough to f
ind themselves in Judge Judy s courtroom.
Let me turn on the television, okay? Your show s on. I think we can catch the las
t couple of minutes.
A moment later, Judge Judy was speaking over both the defendant and the plaint
iff, just to get them to shut up, which seemed to be the predictable, recurring
theme of the show.
She s in rare form, huh?
When the show was over, he turned it off. He thought about moving the flowers
closer, in the hope that she would smell them. He wanted to keep her senses stim
ulated. Yesterday, he d spent some time brushing her hair; the day before, he d brou
ght in some of her perfume and added a dab to each wrist. Today, however, doing
any of those things seemed to take more effort than he could summon.
Other than that, not much new is going on, he said with a sigh. The words sounde
d as meaningless to him as they no doubt did to her. My dad s still covering for me
at the clinic. You d be amazed at how well he does with the animals, considering
how long ago he retired. It s like he never left. People still adore him, and I th
ink he s happy being there. If you ask me, he never should have stopped working in
the first place.
He heard a knock at the door and saw Gretchen walk in. In the past month, he d c
ome to depend on her. Unlike the other nurses, she maintained an undying faith t
hat Gabby would emerge from all of this just fine and consequently treated Gabby
as if she were conscious.
Hey, Travis, she chirped. Sorry for interrupting, but I ve got to hook up a new IV.
When Travis nodded, she approached Gabby. I ll bet you re starving, honey, she said.
Just give me a second, okay? Then I ll give you and Travis your alone time. You kn
ow how I am about interrupting two lovebirds.
She worked quickly, removing one IV bag and replacing it with another, all the
while keeping up a steady stream of conversation. I know you re sore from your wor
kout this morning. We really went at it, didn t we? We were like those folks you s
ee on those infomercials. Working this, working that. I was really proud of you.
Every morning and again in the evening, one of the nurses came in to flex and
stretch Gabby s limbs. Bend the knee, straighten it out; flex the foot up, then pu
sh it down. They did this for every joint and muscle in Gabby s body.
After she finished hanging the bag, Gretchen checked the flow and adjusted the
sheets, then turned to Travis.
Are you doing okay today?
I don t know, he said.
Gretchen seemed sorry she d asked. I m glad you brought flowers, she said, nodding i
n the direction of the windowsill. I m sure Gabby appreciates it.
I hope so.
Are you going to bring in the girls?
Travis swallowed through the lump in his throat. Not today.
Gretchen pursed her lips and nodded. A moment later, she was gone.
Twelve weeks ago, Gabby was rolled into the emergency room on a gurney, uncons
cious and bleeding heavily from a gash on her shoulder. The physicians concentra
ted first on the gash because of the heavy blood loss, though in retrospect, Tra
vis wondered whether a different approach would have changed things.
He didn t know, nor would he ever. Like Gabby, he d been rolled into the emergency
room; like Gabby, he d spent the night unconscious. But there the similarities ha
d ended. The following day, he woke up in pain with a mangled arm, while Gabby n
ever woke up at all.
The doctors were kind, but they didn t try to conceal their concern. Brain injur
ies were always serious, they said, but they were hopeful the injury would heal
and that all would be well in time.
In time.
He sometimes wondered whether doctors realized the emotional intensity of time
, or what he was going through, or even that time was something finite. He doubt
ed it. No one knew what he was going through or really understood the choice tha
t lay before him. On the surface, it was simple. He would do exactly what Gabby
wanted, exactly as she d made him promise.
But what if . . .
And that was the thing. He had thought long and hard about the reality of the
situation; he had stayed awake nights considering the question. He wondered agai
n what love really meant. And in the darkness, he would toss and turn, wishing f
or someone else to make the choice for him. But he wrestled with it alone, and m
ore often than not, he d wake in the morning with a tear-drenched pillow in the pl
ace Gabby should have been. And the first words out of his mouth were always the
same.
I m so sorry, sweetheart.
The choice Travis now had to make had its roots in two distinct events. The fi
rst event related to a couple named Kenneth and Eleanor Baker. The second event,
the accident itself, had occurred on a rainy, windy night twelve weeks ago.
The accident was simple to explain and was similar to many accidents in that a
series of isolated and seemingly inconsequential mistakes somehow came together
and exploded in the most horrific of ways. In mid-November, they d driven to the
RBC Center in Raleigh to see David Copperfield perform onstage. Over the years,
they d usually seen one or two shows a year, if only to have an excuse to get away
for an evening alone. Usually they had dinner beforehand, but that night they d
idn t. Travis was running late at the clinic, they got a late start out of Beaufor
t, and by the time they parked the car, the show was only minutes from beginning
. In his haste, Travis forgot his umbrella, despite the ominous clouds and build
ing wind. That was mistake number one.
They watched the show and enjoyed it, but the weather had deteriorated by the
time they d left the theater. Rain was pouring down hard, and Travis remembered st
anding with Gabby, wondering how best to get to their car. They happened to bump
into friends who d also seen the show, and Jeff offered to walk Travis to his car
so he wouldn t get wet. But Travis didn t want him to have to go out of his way and
declined Jeff s offer. Instead, he bolted into the rain, splashing through ankledeep puddles on the way to his car. He was soaked to the bone by the time he cra
wled in, especially his feet. That was mistake number two.
Because it was late, and because they both had to work the following morning,
Travis drove fast despite the wind and rain, trying to save a few minutes in a d
rive that normally took two and a half hours. Though it was difficult to see thr
ough the windshield, he drove in the passing lane, pushing past the speed limit,
racing past cars with drivers who were more cautious about the dangers of the w
eather outside. That was mistake number three. Gabby asked him repeatedly to slo
w down; more than once, he did as she asked, only to speed up again as soon as h
e could. By the time they reached Goldsboro, still an hour and a half from home,
she d become so angry that she d stopped speaking to him. She leaned her head back
and closed her eyes, refusing to talk, frustrated at the way he was tuning her o
ut. That was mistake number four.
The accident was next, and it could have been avoided had none of the other th
ings happened. Had he brought his umbrella or walked with his friend, he wouldn t
have run to the car in the rain. His feet might have stayed dry. Had he slowed t
he car, he might have been able to control it. Had he respected Gabby s wishes, th
ey wouldn t have argued, and she would have been watching what he intended to do a
nd stopped him before it was too late.
Near Newport, there s a wide, easy bend in the highway intersected by a stopligh
t. By that point in the drive-less than twenty minutes from home-the itch in his
feet was driving him crazy. His shoes had laces, the knots made tighter by the
moisture, and no matter how hard he tried to push them off his feet, the toe of
one foot would slip from the heel of the other. He leaned forward, his eyes bare
ly above the dash, and reached for one shoe with his hand. Glancing downward, he
struggled with the knot and didn t see the light turn yellow.
The knot wouldn t come free. When it finally did, he lifted his eyes, but by the
n it was already too late. The light had turned red, and a silver truck was ente
ring the intersection. Instinctively he hit the brakes, and the tail began to sw
erve on the rain-slicked road. Their car careened out of control. At the last in
stant, the wheels caught and they avoided the truck in the intersection, only to
continue hurtling through the bend, off the highway, and toward the pines.
The mud was even more slippery, and there was nothing he could do. He turned t
he wheel and nothing happened. For an instant, the world seemed to be moving in
slow motion. The last thing he remembered before he lost consciousness was the s
ickening sound of shattering glass and twisting metal.
Gabby didn t even have time to scream.
Travis brushed a loose strand of hair from Gabby s face and tucked it behind her
ear, listening to his stomach as it gurgled. As hungry as he was, he couldn t bea
r the idea of eating. His stomach was perpetually knotted, and in those rare mom
ents it wasn t, thoughts of Gabby would come rushing back to fill the void.
It was an ironic form of punishment, for during their second year of marriage,
Gabby had taken it upon herself to teach Travis to eat things other than the bl
and food he d long favored. He supposed it had come about because she d grown tired
of his restrictive habits. He should have realized that changes were coming when
she started slipping in the occasional comment regarding the tastiness of Belgi
an waffles on Saturday mornings or how nothing was more satisfying on cold winte
r days than a plate of homemade beef stew.
Until that point, Travis had been the chef in the family, but little by little
she began edging her way into the kitchen. She bought two or three cookbooks, a
nd in the evenings, Travis would watch her as she lay on the couch, occasionally
folding down the corner of a page. Now and then, she would ask him whether some
thing sounded particularly good. She d read aloud the ingredients of Cajun jambala
ya or veal Marsala, and though Travis would say they sounded terrific, the tone
of his voice made it obvious that even if she prepared these dishes, he probably
wouldn t eat them.
But Gabby was nothing if not persistent, and she started making small changes
anyway. She prepared butter or cream or wine sauces and poured them over her por
tion of the chicken he cooked nearly every night. Her single request was that he
at least smell it, and usually he had to admit the aroma was appetizing. Later,
she took to leaving a small amount in the serving bowl, and after she d poured so
me on her plate, she simply added some to his whether he wanted to try it or not
. And little by little, to his own surprise, he did.
On their third anniversary, Gabby prepared a mozzarella-stuffed, Italian-flavo
red meat loaf; in lieu of a gift, she asked him to eat it with her; by their fou
rth anniversary, they were sometimes cooking together. Though his breakfast and
lunch were as boring as usual and most evenings his dinners were still as bland
as always, he had to admit there was something romantic about preparing meals to
gether, and as the years rolled on, they started to do it at least twice a week.
Often, Gabby would have a glass of wine, and while they cooked, the girls were
required to stay in the sunroom, where the prominent feature was a Berber carpet
the color of emeralds. They called it green carpet time. While Gabby and Travis c
hopped and stirred and conversed quietly about their day, he reveled in the cont
entment that she had brought him.
He wondered if he d ever get the chance to cook with her again. In the first wee
ks after the accident, he d been almost frantic about making sure the evening nurs
e had his cell number handy. After a month, because she was breathing on her own
, she was moved from the ICU to a private room, and he was certain the change wo
uld wake her. But as the days passed with no change at all, his manic energy was
replaced by a quiet, gnawing dread that was even worse. Gabby had once told him
that six weeks was the cutoff-that after that, the odds of waking from a coma d
ropped dramatically. But still he held out hope. He told himself that Gabby was
a mother, Gabby was a fighter, Gabby was different from all the rest. Six weeks
came and went; another two weeks followed. At three months, he knew, most patien
ts who remained in a coma were moved to a nursing home for long-term care. That
day was today, and he was supposed to let the administrator know what he wanted
to do. But that wasn t the choice he was facing. His choice had to do with Kenneth
and Eleanor Baker, and though he knew he couldn t blame Gabby for bringing them i
nto their lives, he wasn t ready to think about them just yet.
Eighteen
The house they built was the kind of place in which Travis could imagine spend
ing the rest of his life. Despite its newness, there was a lived-in quality from
the moment they moved in. He attributed this to the fact that Gabby had worked
hard to create a home that made people feel comfortable as soon as the door was
opened.
She was the one who oversaw the details that had made the house come alive. Wh
ile Travis conceived the structure in terms of square footage and building mater
ials that could survive the salty, humid summers, Gabby introduced eclectic elem
ents he d never considered. Once, while in the process of building, they were driv
ing past a crumbling farmhouse, long since abandoned, and Gabby insisted he pull
over. By that point, he d grown used to her occasional flights of fancy. He humor
ed her, and soon they were walking through what was once a doorway. They stepped
across floors carpeted with dirt and tried to ignore the kudzu that wove throug
h broken walls and gaping windows. Along the far wall, however, was a fireplace,
thick with grime, and Travis remembered thinking that she d somehow known it was
there. She squatted next to the fireplace, running her hand along the sides and
beneath the mantel. See this? I think it s hand-painted tile, she said. There must be
hundreds of pieces, maybe more. Can you imagine how beautiful it was when it wa
s new? She reached for his hand. We should do something like this.
Little by little, the house took on accents he d never before imagined. They did
n t just copy the style of the fireplace; Gabby found the owners, knocked on their
door, and convinced them to let her purchase the fireplace in its entirety for
less than it cost to clean it. She wanted big oak beams and a vaulted, soft pine
ceiling in the living room, which seemed to match the gabled roofline. The wall
s were plaster or brick or covered with colorful textures, some that resembled l
eather, all of them somehow resembling works of art. She spent long weekends sho
pping for antique furniture and knickknacks, and sometimes it seemed as if the h
ouse itself knew what she was trying to accomplish. When she found a spot in the
hardwood floor that creaked, she walked back and forth, a big grin on her face,
to make sure she wasn t imagining it. She loved rugs, the more colorful the patte
rn the better, and they were scattered throughout the house with generous abando
n.
She was practical, too. The kitchen, bathrooms, and bedrooms were airy and bri
ght and sparkly modern, with large windows framing the gorgeous views. The maste
r bathroom had a claw-foot tub and a roomy, glass-walled shower. She wanted a bi
g garage, with plenty of room for Travis. Guessing that they d spend a lot of time
on the wraparound porch, she insisted on a hammock and matching rockers, along
with an outdoor grill and a seating area located in such a way that during storm
s, they could sit outside without getting wet. The overall effect was one in whi
ch a person didn t know whether he or she was more comfortable inside or out; the
kind of home where someone could walk in with muddy shoes and not get in trouble
. And on their first night in their new home, as they lay on the canopy bed, Gab
by rolled toward Travis with an expression of pure contentment, her voice almost
a purr: This place, with you by my side, is where I ll always want to be.
The kids had been having problems, even if he didn t mention them to Gabby.
Not surprising, of course, but most of the time, Travis was at a loss as to wh
at to do. Christine had asked him more than once whether Mommy was ever going to
come home, and though Travis always assured her that she would, Christine seeme
d uncertain, probably because Travis wasn t sure he believed it himself. Kids were
perceptive like that, and at eight years old, she d reached an age where she knew
the world wasn t as simple as she d once imagined it to be.
She was a lovely child with bright blue eyes who liked to wear neat bows in he
r hair. She wanted her room to always appear just so and refused to wear clothes
that didn t match. She didn t throw temper tantrums when things weren t right; instea
d, she was the sort of child who organized her toys or picked a new pair of shoe
s. But since the accident, she got frustrated easily, and temper tantrums were n
ow the norm. His family, Stephanie included, had recommended counseling, and bot
h Christine and Lisa went twice a week, but the temper tantrums seemed to be get
ting worse. And last night, when Christine went to bed, her room was a mess.
Lisa, who d always been small for her age, had hair the same color as Gabby s and
a generally sunny disposition. She had a blanket she carried with her everywhere
, and she followed Christine around the house like a puppy. She put stickers on
all her folders, and her work in school usually came home covered in stars. Stil
l, for a long time she d cry herself to sleep. From downstairs, Travis could hear
her weeping on the monitor, and he d have to pinch the bridge of his nose to keep
from joining in. On those nights, he would climb the stairs to the girls bedroomsince the accident, another change was that they wanted to sleep in the same roo
m-and Travis would lie beside her, stroking her hair and listening as she whimpe
red I miss Mommy over and over, the saddest words Travis had ever heard. Almost to
o choked up to speak, he would simply say, I know. I do, too.
He couldn t begin to take Gabby s place, and he didn t try; what that left, however,
was a hole where Gabby used to be, an emptiness he didn t know how to fill. Like
most parents, each of them had carved out fiefdoms of expertise when it came to
child care. Gabby, he knew now, had taken a far greater share of the responsibil
ity than he had, and he regretted it now. There were so many things he didn t know
how to do, things that Gabby made seem easy. Little things. He could brush the
girls hair, but when it came to braids, he understood the concept but found them
impossible to master. He didn t know what kind of yogurt Lisa referred to when she
said she wanted the one with the blue banana. When colds settled in, he stood in
the aisle of the grocery store, scanning the shelves of cough syrup, wondering w
hether to buy grape or cherry flavoring. Christine never wore the clothes he set
out. He d had no idea that Lisa liked to wear sparkly shoes on Fridays. He realiz
ed that before the accident, he hadn t even known their teachers names or where in
the school, exactly, their classrooms were located.
Christmas had been the worst, for that had always been Gabby s favorite holiday.
She loved everything about the season: trimming the tree, decorating, baking co
okies, and even the shopping. It used to amaze Travis that she could retain her
humor as she pushed through frenzied crowds in department stores, but at night,
after the girls had gone to bed, she d drag out the gifts with a giddy sense of gl
ee, and together they d wrap the items she d purchased. Later, Travis would hide the
m in the attic.
There was nothing joyous about last year s holiday season. Travis did his best,
forcing excitement when none was evident. He tried to do everything Gabby had do
ne, but the effort of maintaining a happy facade was wearying, especially becaus
e neither Christine nor Lisa made things any easier. It wasn t their fault, but fo
r the life of him, he didn t know how respond when at the top of both their holida
y wish lists was the request for Mommy to get better. It wasn t like a new Leapste
r or a dollhouse could take her place.
In the past couple of weeks, things had improved. Kind of. Christine still thr
ew her tantrums and Lisa still cried at night, but they d adapted to life in the h
ouse without their mom. When they walked in the house after school, they no long
er called for her out of habit; when they fell and scraped their elbows, they au
tomatically came to him to find a Band-Aid. In a picture of the family Lisa drew
at school, Travis saw only three images; he had to catch his breath before he r
ealized there was another horizontal image in the corner, one that seemed added
almost as an afterthought. They didn t ask about their mom as much as they used to
, and they visited rarely. It was hard for them to go, for they didn t know what t
o say or even how to act. Travis understood that and tried to make it easier. Jus
t talk to her, he would tell them, and they would try, but their words would trai
l off into nothing when no response was forthcoming.
Usually, when they did visit, Travis had them bring things-pretty rocks they d f
ound in the garden, leaves they d laminated, homemade cards decorated with glitter
. But even gifts were fraught with uncertainty. Lisa would set her gift on Gabby s
stomach and back away; a moment later, she d move it closer to Gabby s hand. After
that, she d shift it to the end table. Christine, on the other hand, would move co
nstantly. She d sit on the bed and stand by the window, she d peer closely at her mo
ther s face, and through it all, she d never say a single word.
What happened at school today? Travis had asked her the last time she d come. I m sur
e your mom wants to hear all about it.
Instead of answering, Christine turned toward him. Why? she asked, her tone one
of sad defiance. You know she can t hear me.
There was a cafeteria on the ground floor of the hospital, and on most days Tr
avis would go there, mainly to hear voices other than his own. Normally, he arri
ved around lunchtime, and over the past few weeks, he d come to recognize the regu
lars. Most were employees, but there was an elderly woman who seemed to be there
every time he arrived. Though he d never spoken to her, he d learned from Gretchen
that the woman s husband had already been in the intensive care unit when Gabby wa
s admitted. Something about complications from diabetes, and whenever he saw the
woman eating a bowl of soup, he thought about her husband upstairs. It was easy
to imagine the worst: a patient hooked up to a dozen machines, endless rounds o
f surgery, possible amputation, a man barely hanging on. It wasn t his business to
ask, and he wasn t even certain he wanted to know the truth, if only because it f
elt as though he couldn t summon the concern he knew he d need to show. His ability
to empathize, it seemed to him, had evaporated.
Still, he watched her, curious about what he could learn from her. While the k
not in his stomach never seemed to settle enough for him to swallow more than a
few bites of anything, she not only ate her entire meal, but seemed to enjoy it.
While he found it impossible to focus long enough on anything other than his ow
n needs and his daughters daily existence, she read novels during lunch, and more
than once, he d seen her laughing quietly at a passage that had amused her. And u
nlike him, she still maintained an ability to smile, one she offered willingly t
o those who passed her table.
Sometimes, in that smile, he thought he could see a trace of loneliness, even
as he chided himself for imagining something that probably wasn t there. He couldn t
help wondering about her marriage. Because of her age, he assumed they d celebrat
ed a silver, perhaps even golden, anniversary. Most likely there were kids, even
if he d never seen them. But other than that, he could intuit nothing. He wondere
d whether they had been happy, for she seemed to be taking her husband s illness i
n stride, while he walked the corridors of the hospital feeling as if a single w
rong step would send him crumpling to the floor.
He wondered, for instance, whether her husband had ever planted rosebushes for
her, something Travis had done for Gabby when she d first become pregnant with Ch
ristine. Travis remembered the way she looked as she sat on the porch, one hand
on her belly, and mentioned that the backyard needed flowers. Staring at her as
she said it, Travis could no more have denied her request than breathed underwat
er, and though his hands were scraped and his fingertips bloody by the time he f
inished planting the bushes, roses were blooming on the day Christine had been b
orn. He d brought a bouquet to the hospital.
He wondered whether her husband had watched her from the corner of his eye the
way Travis watched Gabby when their kids frolicked on the swings in the park. H
e loved the way Gabby s expression would light up with pride. Often, he d reach for
her hand and feel like holding it forever.
He wondered whether her husband had found her beautiful first thing in the mor
ning, with her hair askew, the way Travis did when he saw Gabby. Sometimes, desp
ite the structured chaos always associated with mornings, they would simply lie
together in each other s arms for a few more minutes, as if drawing strength to fa
ce the upcoming day.
Travis didn t know whether his marriage had been especially blessed or whether a
ll marriages were like his. All he knew was that without Gabby he was utterly lo
st, while others, including the woman in the cafeteria, somehow found the streng
th to go on. He didn t know whether he should admire the woman or feel sorry for h
er. He always turned away before she caught him staring. Behind him, a family wa
ndered in, chattering excitedly and carrying balloons; at the register, he saw a
young man digging through his pockets for change. Travis pushed aside his tray,
feeling ill. His sandwich was only half-eaten. He debated whether to bring it w
ith him back to the room but knew he wouldn t finish it even if he did. He turned
toward the window.
The cafeteria overlooked a small green space, and he watched the changing worl
d outside. Spring would be here soon, and he imagined that tiny buds were beginn
ing to form on the dogwoods. In the past three months, he d seen every kind of wea
ther from this very spot. He d watched rain and sun and seen winds in excess of fi
fty miles an hour bend the pine trees in the distance almost to the point of sna
pping. Three weeks ago, he d seen hail fall from the sky, only to be followed minu
tes later by a spectacular rainbow that seemed to frame the azalea bushes. The c
olors, so vivid they seemed almost alive, made him think that nature sometimes s
ends us signs, that it s important to remember that joy can always follow despair.
But a moment later, the rainbow had vanished and the hail returned, and he real
ized that joy was sometimes only an illusion.
Nineteen
By midafternoon, the sky was turning cloudy, and it was time for Gabby s afterno
on routine. Though she d completed the exercises from the morning, and a nurse wou
ld come by later in the evening to do another workout, he d asked Gretchen if it w
ould be okay if he did the same thing in the afternoon as well.
I think she d like that, Gretchen had said.
She walked him through the process, making sure he understood that every muscl
e and every joint needed attention. While Gretchen and the other nurses always s
tarted with Gabby s fingers, Travis started with her toes. He lowered the sheet an
d reached for her foot, flexing her pinkie toe up and down, then again, before m
oving to the toe beside it.
Travis had come to love doing this for her. The feel of her skin against his o
wn was enough to rekindle a dozen memories: the way he d rubbed her feet while she d
been pregnant, the slow and intoxicating back rubs by candlelight during which
she d seemed to purr, massages on her arm after she d strained it lifting a bag of d
og food one-handed. As much as he missed talking to Gabby, sometimes he believed
that the simple act of touch was what he missed most of all. It had taken him o
ver a month before he d asked Gretchen s permission to help with the exercises, and
during that time, whenever he d stroked Gabby s leg, he d felt somehow as if he were t
aking advantage of her. It didn t matter that they were married; what mattered was
that it was a one-sided act on his part, somehow disrespectful to the woman he
adored.
But this . . .
She needed this. She required this. Without it, her muscles would atrophy, and
even if she woke-when she woke, he quickly corrected himself-she would find her
self permanently bedridden. At least, that s what he told himself. Deep down, he k
new he needed it as well, if only to feel the heat from her skin or the gentle p
ulse of blood in her wrist. It was at such times he felt most certain that she w
ould recover; that her body was simply repairing itself.
He finished with her toes and moved to her ankles; when that was done, he flex
ed her knees, bending them both to her chest and then straightening them. Someti
mes, while lying on the couch and glancing through magazines, Gabby would absent
ly stretch her leg in exactly the same way. It was something a dancer would do,
and she made it look just as graceful.
Does that feel good, sweetheart?
That feels wonderful. Thanks. I was feeling a little stiff.
He knew he d imagined her answer, that Gabby hadn t stirred. But her voice seemed
to arise from nowhere whenever he worked with her like this. Sometimes he wonder
ed whether he was going crazy. How are you doing?
Bored out of my head, if you want to know the truth. Thanks for the flowers, b
y the way. They re lovely. Did you get them from Frick s?
Where else?
How are the girls? Tell me the truth this time.
Travis moved to the other knee. They re okay. They miss you, though, and it s hard
on them. Sometimes I don t know what to do.
You re doing the best you can, right? Isn t that what we always tell each other?
You re right.
Then that s all I expect. And they ll be okay. They re tougher than they look.
I know. They take after you.
Travis imagined her looking him over, her expression wary.
You look skinny. Too skinny.
I haven t been eating much.
I m worried about you. You ve got to take care of yourself. For the girls. For me.
I ll always be here for you.
I know. I m afraid of that, too. Do you remember Kenneth and Eleanor Baker?
Travis stopped flexing. Yes.
Then you know what I m talking about.
He sighed and started again. Yes.
In his mind, her tone softened. Do you remember when you made us all go campin
g in the mountains last year? How you promised that the girls and I would love i
t?
He began working on her fingers and arms. What brought that up?
I think about a lot of things here. What else can I do? Anyway, do you remembe
r that when we first got there, we didn t even bother to set up camp-just kind of
unloaded the truck-even though we heard thunder in the distance, because you wan
ted to show us the lake? And how we had to walk half a mile to get there, and ri
ght when we reached the shore, the sky opened up and it just . . . poured? Water
gushing out of the sky like we were standing under a hose. And by the time we g
ot back to camp, everything was soaked through. I was pretty mad at you and made
you take us all to a hotel instead.
I remember.
I m sorry about that. I shouldn t have gotten so mad. Even though it was your faul
t.
Why is it always my fault?
He imagined her winking at him as he gently rolled her neck from side to side.
Because you re such a good sport when I say it.
He bent over and kissed her on the forehead.
I miss you so much.
I miss you, too.
His throat clenched a little as he finished the exercise routine, knowing Gabb
y s voice would begin to fade away again. He moved his face closer to hers. You kno
w you ve got to wake up, right? The girls need you. I need you.
I know. I m trying.
You ve got to hurry.
She said nothing, and Travis knew he d pressed too hard.
I love you, Gabby.
I love you, too.
Can I do anything? Close the blinds? Bring you something from home?
Will you sit with me a while longer? I m very tired.
Of course.
And hold my hand?
He nodded, covering her body with the sheet once more. He sat in the chair by
the bed and took her hand, his thumb tracing it slightly. Outside, the pigeon ha
d come back, and beyond it, heavy clouds shifted in the sky, transforming into i
mages from other worlds. He loved his wife but hated what life with her had beco
me, cursing himself for even thinking this way. He kissed her fingertips one by
one and brought her hand to his cheek. He held it against him, feeling her warmt
h and wishing for even the tiniest of movements, but when nothing happened, he m
oved it away and didn t even realize that the pigeon seemed to be staring at him.
Eleanor Baker was a thirty-eight-year-old housewife with two boys she adored.
Eight years ago, she d come into the emergency room vomiting and complaining about
a blinding pain in the back of her head. Gabby, who was covering a friend s shift
, happened to be working that day, though she didn t treat Eleanor. Eleanor was ad
mitted to the hospital, and Gabby knew nothing about her until the following Mon
day, when she realized that Eleanor had been placed in the intensive care unit w
hen she didn t wake up on Sunday morning. Essentially, one of the nurses said, she we
nt to sleep and didn t wake up.
Her coma was caused by a severe case of viral meningitis.
Her husband, Kenneth, a history teacher at East Carteret High School who by al
l accounts was a gregarious, friendly guy, spent his days at the hospital. Over
time, Gabby got to know him; at first it was only a few niceties here and there,
but as time wore on, their conversations grew longer. He adored his wife and ch
ildren, and always wore a neat sweater and pressed Dockers when he visited the h
ospital, and he drank Mountain Dew by the liter. He was a devout Catholic, and G
abby often found him praying the rosary by his wife s bedside. Their kids were nam
ed Matthew and Mark.
Travis knew all this because Gabby spoke about him after work. Not in the begi
nning, but later, after they d become something like friends. Their conversations
were always the same in that Gabby wondered how he could continue to come in eac
h and every day, what he might be thinking as he sat in silence beside his wife.
He seems so sad all the time, Gabby said.
That s because he is sad. His wife is in a coma.
But he s there all the time. What about his kids?
Weeks turned into months, and Eleanor Baker was eventually moved to a nursing
home. Months eventually passed into a year, then another. Thoughts of Eleanor Ba
ker may have eventually slipped away, if not for the fact that Kenneth Baker sho
pped at the same grocery store as Gabby. They would occasionally bump into each
other, and always the conversation would turn to how Eleanor was doing. There wa
s never any change.
But over the years, as they continued to run into each other, Gabby noticed th
at Kenneth had changed. She s still going, was the way he began to casually describe
her condition. Where there had once been a light in his eyes when he spoke abou
t Eleanor, there was now only blankness; where once there was love, now there se
emed to be only apathy. His black hair had turned gray within a couple of years,
and he d become so thin that his clothes hung off him.
In the cereal aisle or frozen food section, Gabby couldn t seem to avoid him, an
d he became something of a confidant. He seemed to need her, to tell her what wa
s happening, and in those moments they met, Kenneth mentioned one horrible event
after another: that he d lost his job, lost his house, that he couldn t wait to get
all the kids out of the house, that the older one had dropped out of high schoo
l and the younger one had been arrested again for dealing drugs. Again. That was
the word Gabby emphasized when she told Travis about it later. She also said sh
e was pretty sure he d been drunk when she d run into him.
I just feel so bad for him, Gabby said.
I know you do, Travis said.
She grew quiet then. Sometimes I think it might have been easier if his wife ha
d died instead.
Staring out the window, Travis thought about Kenneth and Eleanor Baker. He had
no idea whether Eleanor was still in the nursing home or whether she was still
alive. Since the accident, he d replayed those conversations in his head nearly ev
ery day, remembering the things Gabby had told him. He wondered whether somehow
Eleanor and Kenneth Baker had been brought into their lives for a reason. How ma
ny people, after all, knew anyone who d been in a coma? It seemed so . . . fantast
ic, no more likely than visiting an island filled with dinosaurs or watching an
alien spaceship blowing up the Empire State Building.
But Gabby worked in a hospital, and if there was some sort of reason for the B
akers to have come into their lives, what was it? To warn him that he was doomed
? That his daughters would lose their way? Those thoughts terrified him, and it
was the reason he made sure he was waiting when his daughters came home from sch
ool. It was the reason he would be taking them to Busch Gardens as soon as schoo
l let out, and it was the reason he let Christine spend the night at her friend s
house. He woke every morning with the thought that even if they were struggling,
which was normal, he still insisted they behave at home and in school, and it w
as the reason that when they misbehaved, both of them were sent to their rooms f
or the night as punishment. Because those were the things Gabby would have done.
His in-laws sometimes thought he was being too hard on the girls. That wasn t su
rprising. His mother-in-law, in particular, had always been judgmental. While Ga
bby and her dad could chat on the phone for an hour, conversations with her moth
er were always clipped. In the beginning, Travis and Gabby spent the mandatory h
olidays in Savannah and Gabby always came home stressed; once their daughters we
re born, Gabby finally told her parents she wanted to start her own holiday trad
itions and that while she would love to see them, her parents would have to come
to Beaufort. They never did.
After the accident, however, her parents checked into a hotel in Morehead City
to be close to their daughter, and for the first month, the three of them were
often in Gabby s room together. While they never said they blamed him for the acci
dent, Travis could feel it in the way they seemed to keep their distance. When t
hey spent time with Christine and Lisa, it was always away from the house-outing
s for ice cream or pizza-and they seldom spent more than a couple of minutes ins
ide.
In time, they had to go back, and now they sometimes came up on weekends. When
they did, Travis tried to stay away from the hospital. He told himself that it
was because they needed time alone with their daughter, and that was partly true
. What he didn t like to admit was that he also stayed away because they continual
ly, if unintentionally, reminded him that he was responsible for Gabby being in
the hospital in the first place.
His friends had reacted as he d expected. Allison, Megan, and Liz prepared dinne
rs in shifts for the first six weeks. Over the years, they d grown close to Gabby,
and sometimes it seemed as if Travis had to support them. They would show up wi
th red eyes and forced smiles, holding Tupperware containers filled to the brim
with lasagna or casseroles, side dishes, and desserts of every kind. They always
made a special point to mention that chicken was always used in place of red me
at, to ensure that Travis would eat it.
They were particularly good with the girls. In the beginning, they often held
the girls as they cried, and Christine grew especially fond of Liz. Liz braided
her hair, helped her make beaded bracelets, and usually spent at least half an h
our with Christine, kicking the soccer ball back and forth. Once inside, they wo
uld begin to whisper as soon as Travis left the room. He wondered what they said
to each other. Knowing Liz, he was certain that if she felt it was something im
portant, she d tell him, but usually she d simply say that Christine wanted to talk.
Over time, he found himself simultaneously thankful for her presence and enviou
s of her relationship with Christine.
Lisa, on the other hand, was closer to Megan. They would color at the kitchen
table or sit beside each other watching television; sometimes Travis would watch
Lisa curl her body against Megan s in the same way she did with Gabby. In moments
like those, they almost looked like mother and daughter, and for the briefest o
f moments, Travis would feel as if the family were reunited again.
Allison, on the other hand, was the one who made sure the girls understood tha
t even if they were sad and upset, they still had responsibilities. She reminded
them to pick up their rooms, helped them with their homework, and always prompt
ed them to bring their dishes to the sink. She was gentle about it, but firm as
well, and while his daughters sometimes avoided their chores on the nights Allis
on didn t come, it happened less frequently than Travis would have guessed. On a s
ubconscious level, they seemed to realize they craved structure in their lives,
and Allison was exactly what they d needed.
Between them and his mother-who was there every afternoon and most weekends-Tr
avis was seldom alone with his daughters in the aftermath of the accident, and t
hey were able to function as parents in a way that he simply couldn t. He d needed t
hem to do that for him. It was all he could do to get out of bed in the morning,
and most of the time, he felt on the verge of crying. His guilt hung heavy, and
not simply because of the accident. He didn t know what to do or where he was sup
posed to be. When he was at the hospital, he wished he were at home with his dau
ghters; when he was at home with his daughters, he wished he were visiting Gabby
. Nothing was ever right.
But after six weeks of dumping excess food in the garbage cans, Travis finally
told his friends that while they were welcome to continue visiting, he no longe
r needed his dinners prepared. Nor did he want them coming by every day. By that
point, with visions of Kenneth Baker playing in his mind, he knew that he had t
o take control over what was left of his life. He had to become the father he on
ce had been, the father Gabby wanted him to be, and little by little, he did. It
wasn t easy, and while there were still times when Christine and Lisa seemed to m
iss the attention from the others, it was more than offset by the attention Trav
is began to show again. It wasn t as if everything had reverted to normal, but now
, at the three-month mark, their lives were as normal as could be expected. In t
aking responsibility for the care of his daughters, Travis sometimes thought he d
saved himself.
On the downside, since the accident, he d left little time for Joe, Matt, and La
ird. While they still dropped by occasionally for a beer after the girls had gon
e to bed, their conversations were stilted. Half the time, everything they said
seemed to be . . . wrong, somehow. When they asked about Gabby, he wasn t in the m
ood to talk about her. When they tried to talk about something else, Travis wond
ered why they seemed to be avoiding talking about Gabby. He knew he wasn t being f
air, but while spending time with them, he was always struck by the differences
between their lives and his. Despite their kindness and patience, despite their
sympathy, he would find himself thinking that in a little while, Joe would head
home to Megan and they d talk quietly while curled up in bed; when Matt put his ha
nd on his shoulder, he would wonder whether Liz was glad that Matt had gone over
or whether she d needed him to do something at home. His relationship with Laird
was exactly the same, and despite himself, he was often unaccountably angry in t
heir presence. While he was forced to live constantly with the unthinkable, thei
r concern could be switched on and off, and for the life of him, he couldn t escap
e his rage at the unfairness of it all. He wanted what they had and knew they wo
uld never understand his loss, no matter how hard they tried. He hated himself f
or thinking these things and tried to hide his fury, but he got the sense that h
is friends realized that things had changed, even if they were uncertain what wa
s really going on. Gradually, their visits became shorter and more infrequent. H
e hated himself for that, too, for the wedge he was creating between them, but h
e didn t know how to repair it.
In quiet moments, he wondered about his anger toward his friends, while he fel
t only gratitude toward their wives. He would sit on the deck pondering it all,
and last week he d found himself gazing at the crescent moon, finally accepting wh
at he d known all along. The difference, he knew, had to do with the fact that Meg
an, Allison, and Liz focused their support on his daughters, while Joe, Matt, an
d Laird focused their support on him. His daughters deserved that.
He, however, deserved to be punished.
Twenty
Sitting with Gabby, Travis glanced at his watch. It was coming up on half-past
two, and normally he would be getting ready to say good-bye to Gabby so he coul
d be home when the girls came back from school. Today, however, Christine was vi
siting a friend s house, and Lisa was going to a birthday party at the aquarium in
Pine Knoll Shores, so neither would be home until just before dinner. The fact
that his daughters had plans for today was fortunate, since he needed to stay lo
nger anyway. Later, he had to meet with the neurologist and the hospital adminis
trator.
He knew what the meeting was about, and he had no doubt they d be in full-sympat
hy mode, complete with moderate, reassuring tones. The neurologist would tell hi
m that because there was nothing more the hospital could do for Gabby, she would
have to be transferred to a nursing home. He would be assured that since her co
ndition was stable, the risk would be minimal and that a physician would check i
n on her weekly. Additionally, he would probably be told that the staff who work
ed in nursing homes were fully capable of providing the care she would need dail
y. If Travis protested, the administrator would probably step in and note that u
nless Gabby was in the intensive care unit, their insurance covered only a three
-month stay in the hospital. He might also shrug and mention that since the hosp
ital was meant to serve the local community, there wasn t room to keep her long-te
rm, even if she had once been an employee. There was really nothing else he coul
d do. Essentially, by teaming up, they wanted to make sure they got their way.
What neither of them realized was that the decision wasn t quite that simple. Be
neath the surface lurked the reality that while Gabby was in the hospital, it wa
s assumed that she would wake up soon, for this was where temporary coma patient
s always stayed. Patients in temporary comas needed physicians and nurses nearby
to quickly monitor changes that would signify the improvement they d known was co
ming all along. In a nursing home, it would be assumed that Gabby would never wa
ke up. Travis wasn t ready to accept that, but it seemed as if he weren t going to b
e given a choice.
But Gabby had a choice, and in the end, his decision wasn t going to be based on
what either the neurologist or the administrator said to him. He would base his
decision on what he thought Gabby would want.
Outside the window, the pigeon was gone, and he wondered whether it went off t
o visit other patients, like a doctor making his rounds, and if it did, whether
the other patients noticed the pigeon the way he did.
Sorry about crying earlier, Travis whispered. As he stared at Gabby, he watched
her chest rising and falling with every breath. I couldn t help it.
He was under no illusions he would hear her voice this time. It happened only
once a day.
Do you know what I like about you? he asked. Aside from pretty much everything? He
forced a smile. I like the way you are with Molly. She s all right, by the way. He
r hips haven t given out, and she still likes to lie in the tall grass whenever sh
e can. Whenever I see her doing that, I think about those first few years we wer
e together. Remember when we used to take the dogs on walks down the beach? When
we d go out early so we could let them off the leash and they could run around? T
hose were always such . . . restful mornings, and I used to love watching you la
ugh as you chased Molly in circles, trying to tap her butt. She used to go crazy
when you did that, and she d get this gleam in her eye with her tongue hanging ou
t, waiting for you to make your move.
He paused, noting with surprise that the pigeon had returned. It must like lis
tening to him talk, he decided.
That s how I knew you d be great with kids, by the way. Because of how you were wit
h Molly. Even that first time we met . . . He shook his head, his mind flashing b
ack. Believe it or not, I ve always liked the fact that you stormed over to my plac
e that night, and not just because we ended up getting married. You were like a
mama bear protecting her cub. It s impossible to get that angry unless you re capabl
e of loving deeply, and after watching how you were with Molly-lots of love and
attention, lots of worry, and nobody on earth better mess with her-I knew you d be
exactly the same way with kids.
He traced his finger along her arm. Do you know how much that s meant to me? Know
ing how much you love our daughters? You have no idea how much comfort that gave
me over the years.
He leaned his face close to her ear. I love you, Gabby, more than you ll ever kno
w. You re everything I ve ever wanted in a wife. You re every hope and every dream I ve
ever had, and you ve made me happier than any man could possibly be. I don t ever wa
nt to give that up. I can t. Can you understand that?
He waited for a response, but there was nothing. There was always nothing, as
if God were telling him that his love was somehow not enough. Staring at Gabby,
he suddenly felt very old and very tired. He adjusted the sheet, feeling alone a
nd apart from his wife, knowing he was a husband whose love had somehow failed h
er.
Please, he whispered. You ve got to wake up, sweetheart. Please? We re running out of
time.
Hey, Stephanie said. Dressed in jeans and a T-shirt, she looked nothing like the
successful professional she d become. Living in Chapel Hill, she was the senior p
roject manager at a rapidly growing biotechnology firm, but in the last three mo
nths, she d spent three or four days a week in Beaufort. Since the accident, she d b
een the only one Travis could really talk to. She alone knew all his secrets.
Hey, Travis said.
She crossed the room and leaned over the side of the bed. Hey, Gabby, she said,
kissing her on the cheek. You doing okay?
Travis loved the way his sister treated Gabby. Except for Travis, she was the
only one who d always seemed comfortable in Gabby s presence.
Stephanie pulled up another chair and slid it closer to Travis. And how are you
doing, big brother?
Okay, he said.
Stephanie gave him the once-over. You look like hell.
Thanks.
You re not eating enough. She reached in her handbag and pulled out a bag of peanu
ts. Eat these.
I m not hungry. I just had lunch.
How much?
Enough.
Humor me, okay? She used her teeth to tear open the bag. Just eat these and I pro
mise I ll shut up and won t bother you again.
You say that every time you re here.
That s because you keep looking like hell. She tilted her head toward Gabby. I ll bet
she said the same thing, too, right? She d never questioned Travis s claims about he
aring Gabby s voice, or if she did, her tone reflected no concerns about it.
Yeah, she did.
She forced the bag toward him. Then take the peanuts.
Travis took the bag, lowering it to his lap.
Now put some in your mouth, then chew and swallow.
She sounded like their mother. Did anyone ever tell you that you can be a littl
e bit too pushy at times?
Every day. And believe me, you need someone to be pushy with you. You re just luc
ky you have me in your life. I m quite the blessing for you.
For the first time all day, he gave a genuine laugh. That s one word for it. He po
ured out a small handful of nuts and began to chew. How are things with you and B
rett?
Stephanie had been dating Brett Whitney for the past two years. One of the mos
t successful hedge fund managers in the country, he was wildly wealthy, handsome
, and considered by many to be the most eligible bachelor south of the Mason-Dix
on Line.
We re still going.
Trouble in paradise?
Stephanie shrugged. He asked me to marry him again.
And you said?
The same thing I said before.
How did he take it?
Fine. Oh, he did his I m hurt and angry thing again, but he was back to normal in a
couple of days. We spent last weekend in New York.
Why don t you just marry him?
She shrugged. I probably will.
Here s a hint, then. You might want to say yes when he asks.
Why? He ll ask again.
You sound so certain when you say that.
I am. And I ll say yes when I m positive he wants to marry me.
He s asked you three times. How much more positive can you get?
He just thinks he wants to marry me. Brett is the kind of guy who likes challen
ges, and right now, I m a challenge. As long as I stay a challenge, he ll keep askin
g. And when I know he s really ready, that s when I ll say yes.
I don t know . . .
Trust me, she said. I know men, and I have my charms. Her eyes glittered with misc
hief. He knows that I don t need him, and it practically kills him.
No, he said. You definitely don t need him.
So, changing the subject, when are you going back to work?
Soon, he mumbled.
She reached into his bag of peanuts and popped a couple in her mouth. You are a
ware that Dad s not exactly a spring chicken anymore.
I know.
So . . . next week?
When Travis didn t respond, Stephanie folded her hands in front of her. Okay, her
e s what s going to happen, since you obviously haven t made up your mind. You re going
to start showing up at the clinic, and at the very least, you re going to stay eve
ry day until at least one o clock. That s your new schedule. Oh, and you can close t
he office on Friday at noon. That way, Dad s only there for four afternoons.
He squinted at her. I can see you ve been giving this a lot of thought.
Someone has to. And just so you know, this isn t just for Dad. You need to go bac
k to work.
What if I don t think I m ready?
Too bad. Do it anyway. If not for you, do it for Christine and Lisa.
What are you talking about?
Your daughters. Remember them?
I know who they are. . . .
And you love them, right?
What kind of a question is that?
Then if you love them, she said, ignoring his question, you ve got to start acting
like a parent again. And that means you have to go back to work.
Why?
Because, she said, you have to show them that no matter what horrible things happ
en in life, you still have to go on. That s your responsibility. Who else is going
to teach them that?
Steph . . .
I m not saying it s going to be easy, but I am saying you don t have a choice. After
all, you haven t let them quit, have you? They re still in school, right? You re still
making them do homework, right?
Travis said nothing.
So, if you expect them to handle their responsibilities-and they re only six and
eight-then you ve got to handle yours. They need to see you getting back to normal
, and work is part of that. Sorry. That s life.
Travis shook his head, feeling his anger rise. You don t understand.
I understand completely.
He brought his fingers to the bridge of his nose and squeezed. Gabby is . . .
When he didn t continue, Stephanie put her hand on his knee. Passionate? Intellig
ent? Kind? Moral? Funny? Forgiving? Patient? Everything you ever imagined in a w
ife and mother? In other words, pretty much perfect?
He looked up in surprise.
I know, she said quietly. I love her, too. I ve always loved her. She s not only been
the sister I never had, but my best friend, too. Sometimes she felt like my onl
y real friend. And you re right-she s been wonderful for you and the kids. You could
n t have done any better. Why do you think I keep coming down here? It s not just fo
r her, or for you. It s for me. I miss her, too.
Unsure how to respond, he said nothing. In the silence, Stephanie sighed.
Have you decided what you re going to do?
Travis swallowed. No, he admitted. Not yet.
It s been three months.
I know, he said.
When s the meeting?
I m supposed to meet with them in half an hour.
Watching her brother, she accepted that. Okay. I ll tell you what. I ll let you thi
nk about it some more. I ll just head over to your place and see the girls.
They re not there, but they should be back later.
You mind if I wait around?
Go ahead. There s a keyShe didn t let him finish. Beneath the plaster frog on the porch? Yeah, I know. A
nd if you re curious, I m pretty sure most burglars could figure that out, too.
He smiled. I love you, Steph.
I love you, too, Travis. And you know I m here for you, right?
I know.
Always. Anytime.
I know.
Staring at him, she finally nodded. I ll just wait for you, okay? I want to know
what happens.
Okay.
Standing, she reached for her purse and flung it over her shoulder. She kissed
her brother on the top of his head.
We ll see you later, okay, Gabby? she said, not expecting an answer. She was halfw
ay out of the room when she heard Travis s voice again.
How far should you go in the name of love?
Stephanie half turned. You ve asked me that question before.
I know. Travis hesitated. But I m asking what you think I should do.
Then I ll tell you what I always do. That it s your choice how you handle this.
What does that mean for me?
Her expression seemed almost helpless. I don t know, Trav. What do you think it m
eans?
Twenty-one
It was a little more than two years ago when Gabby bumped into Kenneth Baker o
n one of those summer evenings for which Beaufort was famous. With live music pl
aying and dozens of boats tied up at the docks on a summer night, it had seemed
like the perfect night to bring Gabby and the kids downtown for ice cream. While
they stood in line with the kids, Gabby casually mentioned that she d seen a beau
tiful print in one of the stores they d passed. Travis smiled. By then, he d grown u
sed to her hints.
Why don t you check it out, he d said. I ve got the girls. Go ahead.
She was gone longer than he d expected, and when she returned, her expression wa
s troubled. Later, after they d gone home and put the girls to bed, Gabby sat on t
he couch, clearly preoccupied.
Are you okay? he asked.
Gabby shifted on the couch. I ran into Kenneth Baker earlier today, she admitted
. When you were getting ice cream.
Oh yeah? How s he doing?
She sighed. Do you realize that his wife s been in a coma for six years now? Six
years. Can you imagine what that must be like for him?
No, Travis said. I can t.
He looks like an old man.
I m sure I d age, too. He s going through something terrible.
She nodded, her expression still troubled. He s angry, too. It s like he resents he
r. He said he only visits her now and then. And his kids . . . Lost in thought, s
he seemed to lose track of her sentence.
Travis stared at Gabby. What s this about?
Would you visit me? If something like that happened to me?
For the first time, he felt a pang of fear, even though he wasn t quite sure why
. Of course I would.
Her expression was almost sad. But after a while, you d visit less.
I d visit you all the time.
And in time, you d resent me.
I d never resent you.
Kenneth resents Eleanor.
I m not Kenneth. He shook his head. Why are we even talking about this?
Because I love you.
He opened his mouth to respond, but she raised her hand. Let me finish, okay? Sh
e paused, collecting her thoughts. When Eleanor first went into the hospital, it
was obvious how much Kenneth loved her. That s what I noticed whenever we spoke, a
nd over time, I think he told me their entire story-how they d met at the beach th
e summer after graduation; that when he first asked her out, she d said no, but he
somehow finagled her number anyway; that he first told her he loved her on her
parents thirtieth anniversary. But he didn t just tell the stories-it was like he w
as reliving them over and over. In a way, he reminded me of you.
Gabby reached for his hand. You do the same thing, you know. Do you know how ma
ny times I ve heard you tell someone about the first time we met? Don t get me wrong
-I love that about you. I love the fact that you keep those memories alive in yo
ur heart and that they mean as much to you as they do to me. And the thing is .
. . when you do, I can feel you fall in love with me again. In some ways, it s the
most touching thing you do for me. She paused. Well, that and cleaning the kitche
n when I m too tired to do it.
Despite himself, he laughed. Gabby didn t seem to notice.
Today, though, Kenneth was just so . . . bitter, and when I asked about Eleanor
, I got the sense that he wished she were dead. And when I compare that to the w
ay he used to feel about his wife, and what s happened to his kids . . . it s terrib
le.
When her voice died away, Travis squeezed her hand. That s not going to happen to
us. . . .
That s not the point. The point is, I can t live knowing that I didn t do what I shou
ld have done.
What are you talking about?
She ran her thumb over his hand. I love you so much, Travis. You re the best husb
and, the best person, that I ve ever known. And I want you to make me a promise.
Anything, he said.
She looked directly at him. I want you to promise that if anything ever does ha
ppen to me, you ll let me die.
We already have living wills, he countered. We did those when we did our regular
wills and power of attorney.
I know, she said. But our lawyer retired to Florida, and as far as I know, no one
but the three of us knows that I don t want my life prolonged in the event I can t
make my own decisions. It wouldn t be fair to you or the kids to put your lives on
hold, because in time, resentment would be inevitable. You would suffer and the
kids would suffer. Seeing Kenneth today convinced me of that, but I don t want yo
u to ever be bitter about anything we shared. I love all of you too much for tha
t. Death is always sad, but it s also inevitable, and that s why I signed the living
will in the first place. Because I love all of you so much. Her tone became soft
er and yet more determined. And the thing is . . . I don t want to feel like I have
to tell my parents or my sisters about the decision I made. The decision we mad
e. I don t want to have to find another attorney and redraft the documents. I want
to be able to trust that you ll do what I want. And that s why I want you to promis
e me that you ll honor my wishes.
The conversation struck him as surreal. Yeah . . . sure, he said.
No, not like that. I want you to promise me. I want you to make a vow.
Travis swallowed. I promise to do exactly what you want. I swear it.
No matter how hard it is?
No matter how hard.
Because you love me.
Because I love you.
Yes, she said. And because I love you, too.
The living will Gabby had signed in the attorney s office was the document Travi
s had brought with him to the hospital. Among other things, it specified that he
r feeding tubes were to be removed after twelve weeks. Today was the day he had
to make his choice.
Sitting beside Gabby in the hospital, Travis recalled the conversation he d had
with Gabby that night; he remembered the vow he d made to her. He d replayed those w
ords a hundred times over the last few weeks, and as the three-month mark approa
ched, he d found himself growing ever more desperate for Gabby to wake. As had Ste
phanie, which was why she was waiting for him at home. Six weeks ago, he d told he
r about the promise he d made to Gabby; the need to share it had become unbearable
.
The next six weeks passed without relief. Not only didn t Gabby stir, but she d sh
own no improvement in any of her brain functions. Though he tried to ignore the
obvious, the clock had moved forward, and it was now the hour of his decision.
Sometimes, during his imaginary conversations with her, he d tried to get her to
change her mind. He d argue that the promise hadn t been a fair one; that the only
reason he d said yes was that the prospect seemed so unlikely, he d never believed i
t would come up. He confessed that had he been able to predict the future, he wo
uld have torn up the documents she d signed in the attorney s office, for even if sh
e couldn t respond, he still couldn t imagine a life without her.
He would never be like Kenneth Baker. He felt no bitterness toward Gabby, nor
would he ever. He needed her, he needed the hope he felt whenever they were toge
ther. He drew strength from visiting her. Earlier today, he d been exhausted and l
ethargic; as the day wore on, his sense of commitment had only grown stronger, l
eaving him certain that he would have the ability to laugh with his daughters, t
o be the father Gabby wanted him to be. It had worked for three months, and he k
new he could do it forever. What he didn t know was how on earth he could go on kn
owing that Gabby was gone. As strange as it seemed, there was a comforting predi
ctability to the new routine of his life.
Outside the window, the pigeon paced back and forth, making him think it was p
ondering the decision with him. There were times when he felt a strange kinship
with the bird, as if it were trying to teach him something, though what, he had
no idea. Once, he had brought some bread with him, but he hadn t realized the scre
en would prevent him from tossing it onto the ledge. Standing before the glass,
the pigeon had eyed the bread in his hand, cooing slightly. It flew away a momen
t later, only to return and stay the rest of the afternoon. After that, it showe
d no fear of him. Travis could tap the glass and the pigeon would stand in place
. It was a curious situation that gave him something else to think about when si
tting in the quiet room. What he wanted to ask the pigeon was this: Am I to beco
me a killer?
This was where his thoughts inevitably led, and it was what differentiated him
from others who were expected to carry out the desires outlined in living wills
. They were doing the right thing; their choice was rooted in compassion. For hi
m, however, the choice was different, if only for logical reasons. If A and B, t
hen C. But for his commission of one mistake after the next, there would have be
en no car accident; had there been no accident, there would have been no coma. H
e was the proximate cause of her injury, but she hadn t died. And now, with the fl
ourish of some legal documents from his pocket, he could finish the job. He coul
d be responsible for her death once and for all. The difference turned his stoma
ch inside out; with every passing day, as the decision approached, he ate less a
nd less. Sometimes it seemed not only that God wanted Gabby to die, but that He
wanted Travis to know that it had been entirely his fault.
Gabby, he was certain, would deny it. The accident was just that-an accident.
And she, not he, had made the decision as to how long she wanted a feeding tube.
Yet he couldn t shed the crushing weight of his responsibility, for the simple re
ason that no one, aside from Stephanie, knew what Gabby wanted. In the end, he a
lone would make the choice.
The grayish afternoon light gave the walls a melancholy cast. He still felt pa
ralyzed. Buying time, he removed the flowers from the windowsill and brought the
m to the bed. As he laid them across Gabby s chest and took his seat, Gretchen app
eared in the doorway. She moved into the room slowly; as she checked Gabby s vital
s, she didn t say a word. She jotted something in the chart and smiled briefly. A
month ago, when he was doing Gabby s exercises, Gabby had mentioned that she was p
retty sure Gretchen had a crush on him.
Is she going to be leaving us? he heard Gretchen ask.
Travis knew she was referring to a transfer to a nursing home; in the halls, T
ravis had heard whispers that it would be coming soon. But there was more to her
question than Gretchen could possibly understand, and he couldn t summon the will
to answer.
I m going to miss her, she said. And I m going to miss you, too.
Her expression was brimming with compassion.
I mean it. I ve worked here longer than Gabby, and you should have heard the way
she used to talk about you. And the kids, too, of course. You could tell that ev
en though she loved her job, she was always happiest when it was time to go home
at the end of the day. She wasn t like the rest of us, who were excited to be don
e for the day. She was excited to go home, to be reunited with her family. I rea
lly admired that about her, that she had a life like that.
Travis didn t know what to say.
She sighed, and Travis thought he saw the glisten of tears. It breaks my heart
to see her like this. And you, too. Do you know that every nurse in the hospital
knows you sent your wife roses every anniversary? Pretty much every woman here
wished that her husband or boyfriend would do things like that. And then, after
the accident, the way you are with her . . . I know you re sad and angry, but I ve s
een you do the exercises with her. I ve heard what you say, and . . . it s like you
and she have this connection that can t be broken. It s heartbreaking and yet beauti
ful. And I feel so horrible for what you re both going through. I ve been praying fo
r you both every night.
Travis felt his throat close.
I guess what I m trying to say is that you two make me believe that true love rea
lly exists. And that even the darkest hours can t take that away. She stopped, her
expression revealing that she felt she d said too much, and she turned away. A mom
ent later, as she was about to leave the room, he felt her place a hand on his s
houlder. It was warm and light and lingered for just an instant, and then it was
gone, and Travis was alone with his choice once more.
It was time. Looking at the clock, he knew he couldn t wait any longer. The othe
rs were waiting for him. He crossed the room to shut the blinds. Habit led him t
o turn on the television. Though he knew the nurses would turn it off later, he
didn t want Gabby to lie alone in a room more silent than a tomb.
He d often imagined himself trying to explain how it happened. He could see hims
elf shaking his head in disbelief while sitting at the kitchen table with his pa
rents. I don t know why she woke up, he heard himself saying. As far as I can tell, t
here is no magical answer. It was just like every other time I visited . . . exc
ept that she opened her eyes. He could imagine his mother crying tears of joy, he
could picture himself making the call to Gabby s parents. Sometimes it was as cle
ar to him as if it had actually happened, and he would hold his breath, living a
nd experiencing the feeling of wonder.
But now he doubted that it would ever be possible, and from across the room, h
e stared at her. Who were they, Gabby and he? Why had it all turned out this way
? There had been a time when he would have had reasonable answers to those quest
ions, but that time was long past. These days, he understood nothing. Above her,
the fluorescent light hummed, and he wondered what he was going to do. He still
didn t know. What he knew was this: She was still alive, and where there was life
, there was always hope. He focused on her, wondering how someone so close and s
o present could remain so remote.
Today, he had to make his choice. To tell the truth meant Gabby would die; to
tell a lie meant that Gabby s wish would be denied. He wanted her to tell him what
to do, and from somewhere far away, he could imagine her answer.
I already have, sweetheart. You know what you have to do.
But the choice, he wanted to plead, had been based on faulty assumptions. If h
e could go back in time, he would never have made that promise, and he wondered
whether she would have even asked him to. Would she have made the same decision
if she d known that he would cause her coma in the first place? Or if she d known th
at pulling the feeding tube and watching her slowly starve to death would certai
nly kill a part of him? Or if he told her that he believed he could be a better
father if she remained alive, even if she never recovered at all?
It was more than he could bear, and he felt his mind begin to scream: Please w
ake up! The echo seemed to shake the very atoms of his being. Please, sweetheart
. Do it for me. For our daughters. They need you. I need you. Open your eyes bef
ore I go, while there s still time. . . .
And for a moment, he thought he saw a twitch, he would swear he saw her stir.
He was too choked up to speak, but as always, reality reasserted itself, and he
knew it had been an illusion. In the bed, she hadn t moved at all, and watching he
r through his tears, he felt his soul begin to die.
He had to go, but there was one more thing he had to do. Like everyone, he kne
w the story of Snow White, of the kiss from the Prince that broke the evil spell
. That s what he thought of every time he left Gabby for the day, but now the noti
on struck him as imperative. This was it, his very last chance. Despite himself,
he felt a tiny swell of hope at the thought that somehow, this time would be di
fferent. While his love for her had always been there, the finality had not, and
maybe the combination constituted the magical formula that he d been missing. He
steadied himself and moved toward the bed, trying to convince himself that this
time it would work. This kiss, unlike all the others, would fill her lungs with
life. She would moan in momentary confusion, but then she would realize what he
was doing. She would feel his life pouring into hers. She would sense the fullne
ss of his love for her, and with a passion that surprised him, she would begin t
o kiss him in return.
He leaned closer, their faces drawing near, and he could feel the heat of her
breath mingling with his. He closed his eyes against the memory of a thousand ot
her kisses and touched his lips to hers. He felt a kind of spark, and all at onc
e he felt her slowly coming back to him. She was the arm that held him close in
times of trouble, she was the whisper on the pillow beside him at night. It was
working, he thought, it was really working . . . and as his heart began to race
in his chest, it finally dawned on him that nothing had changed at all.
Pulling back, all he could do was lightly trace her cheek with his finger. His
voice was hoarse, barely above a whisper.
Good-bye, sweetheart.
Twenty-two
How far should a person go in the name of love?
Travis was still turning this question over in his mind when he pulled into th
e drive, even though he d already made his decision. Stephanie s car was parked out
front, but except for the living room, the rest of the house was dark. An empty
house would have been too much to bear.
The chill was biting as he stepped out of his car, and he pulled his jacket ti
ghter. The moon had yet to rise, and the stars glittered overhead; if he concent
rated, he knew he could still remember the names of the constellations that Gabb
y had once traced for him. He smiled briefly, thinking back on that evening. The
memory was as clear as the sky above, but he forced it away, knowing he didn t ha
ve the strength to let it linger. Not tonight.
The lawn was shiny with moisture, promising a heavy frost overnight. He remind
ed himself to put out the girls mittens and scarves so he wouldn t have to rush aro
und in the morning. They would be home soon, and despite his fatigue, he missed
them. Tucking his hands in his pockets, he made his way up the front steps.
Stephanie turned when she heard him enter. He could feel her trying to read hi
s expression. She started toward him.
Travis, she said.
Hey, Steph. He removed his jacket, realizing he couldn t remember the drive back h
ome.
Are you okay?
It took him a moment to respond. I don t know.
She put her hand on his arm. Her voice was gentle. Can I get you something to d
rink?
A glass of water would be great.
She seemed relieved to be able to do something. Be back in a jiffy.
He sat on the couch and leaned his head back, feeling as drained as if he d spen
t the day in the ocean, fighting waves. Stephanie returned and handed him the gl
ass.
Christine called. She s running a little late. Lisa s on her way.
Okay, he said. He nodded before focusing on the family portrait.
Do you want to talk about it?
He took a drink of water, realizing how parched his throat had become. Did you
think about the question I asked you earlier? About how far someone should go in
the name of love?
She considered the question for a moment. I think I answered that.
You did. Sort of.
What? You re telling me it wasn t a good enough answer?
He smiled, thankful that Stephanie was still able to talk to him as she always
had. What I really wanted to know is what you would have done if you were in my
position.
I knew what you wanted, she said hesitantly, but . . . I don t know, Trav. I really
don t. I can t imagine having to make that kind of decision, and to be honest, I do
n t think anyone can. She exhaled. Sometimes I wish you d never told me.
I probably shouldn t have. I had no right to burden you with that.
She shook her head. I didn t mean it like that. I know you had to talk to someone
about it, and I m glad you trusted me. It s just that it made me feel terrible for
what you ve been going through. The accident, your own injuries, worries about the
kids, your wife in a coma . . . and then to have to make a choice whether or no
t to honor Gabby s wishes? It s too much for anyone to handle.
Travis said nothing.
I ve been worried about you, she added. I ve barely slept since you told me.
I m sorry.
Don t apologize. I should be the one apologizing to you. I should have moved back
here as soon as it happened. I should have visited Gabby more often. I should h
ave been around every time you needed to talk to someone.
It s all right. I m glad you didn t walk away from your job. You worked hard to get t
here, and Gabby knew that, too. Besides, you were here a lot more than I thought
you would be.
I just feel so sorry for what you ve been going through.
He slipped his arm around her. I know, he said.
Together, they sat in silence. In the background, Travis heard the heater clic
k on as Stephanie sighed. I want you to know that no matter what you decided, I m w
ith you, okay? I know, more than almost anyone, how much you love Gabby.
Travis turned toward the window. Through the glass, he could see the lights fr
om his neighbors houses gleaming in the darkness. I couldn t do it, he finally said.
He tried to collect his thoughts. I thought I could, and I even rehearsed the w
ords I would say when telling the doctors to remove her feeding tube. I know tha
t s what Gabby wanted, but . . . in the end I just couldn t do it. Even if I spend t
he rest of my life visiting her in the nursing home, it s still a better life than
one I could spend with anyone else. I love her too much to let her go.
Stephanie gave him a wan smile. I know, she said. I could see it on your face whe
n you walked in the door.
Do you think I did the right thing?
Yes, she answered without hesitation.
For me, or for Gabby?
Both.
He swallowed. Do you think she ll wake up?
Stephanie met his eyes. Yes, I do. I ve always believed that. The two of you . .
. there s something uncanny about the way you are with each other. I mean everythi
ng-the way you look at each other, the way she relaxes when you put your hand on
her back, the way you both seem to know what the other is always thinking . . .
it s always struck me as extraordinary. That s another reason I keep putting marria
ge off. I know I want something like what you two share, and I m not sure I ve found
it yet. I m not sure I ever will. And with love like that . . . they say anything s
possible, right? You love Gabby and Gabby loves you, and I just can t imagine a w
orld where you re not together. Together the way you re meant to be.
Travis let her words sink in.
So what s next? she asked. You need help burning the living will?
Despite the tension, he laughed. Maybe later.
And the lawyer? He won t come back to haunt you, right?
I haven t heard from him in years.
See, that s another sign you did the right thing.
I guess.
What about nursing homes?
She ll be transferred next week. I just have to make the arrangements.
Need help?
He massaged his temples, feeling unbearably tired. Yeah, he said. I d like that.
Hey- She gave him a little shake. You made the right decision. Don t feel guilty ab
out a single thing. You did the only thing you could do. She wants to live. She
wants the chance to get back to you and the girls.
I know. But . . .
He couldn t finish his sentence. The past was gone and the future had yet to unf
old, and he knew he should focus his life on the present . . . yet his day-to-da
y existence suddenly struck him as endless and unbearable.
I m scared, he finally admitted.
I know, she said, pulling him close. I m scared, too.
Epilogue
June 2007
The muted landscape of winter had given way to the lush colors of late spring,
and as Travis sat on the back porch, he could hear birds. Dozens, maybe hundred
s, were calling and chirping, and every so often a flock of starlings would brea
k from the trees, flying in formations that nearly seemed choreographed.
It was a Saturday afternoon, and Christine and Lisa were still playing on the
tire swing that Travis had hung the week before. Because he wanted a long, slow
arc for the girls-something different from the regular swing set-he d cut a few of
the low branches before securing the rope as high in the tree as possible. He d s
pent an hour that morning pushing the swing and listening to his daughters squea
l in delight; by the time he d finished, the back of his shirt was slick with pers
piration. And still the girls wanted more.
Let Daddy rest for a few minutes, he d wheezed. Daddy s tired. Why don t you push each
other for a while.
Their disappointment, etched so clearly on their faces and in the droop of the
ir shoulders, lasted only moments. Soon they were squealing again. Travis watche
d them swing, his mouth curling into a slight smile. He loved the musical sound
of their laughter, and it warmed his heart to see them playing so well together.
He hoped they would always remain as close as they were now. He liked to believ
e that if he and Stephanie were any indication, they would grow even closer in l
ater years. At least that was the hope. Hope, he d learned, was sometimes all a pe
rson had, and in the past four months, he d learned to embrace it.
Since he d made his choice, his life had gradually returned to a kind of normalc
y. Or at least a semblance thereof. Along with Stephanie, he d toured half a dozen
nursing homes. Prior to those visits, his preconceptions of nursing homes were
that they were all dimly lit, filthy places where confused, moaning patients wan
dered the halls in the middle of the night and were watched over by orderlies wh
o bordered on the psychotic. None of which turned out to be true. At least, not
in the places he and Stephanie visited.
Instead, most were bright and airy, run by thoughtful, reflective middle-aged
men or women in suits who went to great pains to prove their facilities were mor
e hygienic than most homes and that the staff was courteous, caring, and profess
ional. While Travis spent the tours wondering whether Gabby would be happy in a
place like this or whether she d be the youngest patient in the nursing home, Step
hanie asked the hard questions. She asked about background checks for the staff
and emergency procedures, she wondered aloud how quickly complaints were resolve
d, and as she strolled the halls, she made it obvious that she was well aware of
every code and regulation that had been mandated by law. She offered hypothetic
al situations that might come to pass and asked how they d be handled by the staff
and director; she asked how many times Gabby would be turned in the course of a
day, so as to prevent bedsores. At times, she struck Travis as being like a pro
secutor trying to convict someone of a crime, and though she ruffled the feather
s of a few directors, Travis was grateful for her vigilance. In his state of min
d, he was barely able to function, but he was dimly aware that she was asking al
l the right questions.
In the end, Gabby was transferred by ambulance to a nursing home run by a man
named Elliot Harris, only a couple of blocks from the hospital. Harris had impre
ssed not only Travis, but Stephanie as well, and Stephanie had filled out most o
f the paperwork in his office. She d insinuated-true or not-that she knew people i
n the state legislature and ensured that Gabby was given a gracious private room
that overlooked a courtyard. When Travis visited her, he rolled the bed toward
the window and puffed up her pillows. He imagined that she enjoyed the sounds fr
om the courtyard, where friends and families met, along with the sunlight. She d s
aid that to him once when he d been flexing her legs. She d also said that she under
stood his choice and that she was glad he d made it. Or, more accurately, he d imagi
ned that she had.
After placing her in the home and spending most of another week with her while
they both got acclimated to her new environment, he d gone back to work. He took
Stephanie s suggestion and began working until early afternoon four days a week; h
is father filled in after that. He hadn t realized how much he d missed interaction
with other people, and when he had lunch with his father, he found he was able t
o finish nearly all of his meal. Of course, working regularly meant he had to ju
ggle his schedule with Gabby. After seeing the girls off to school, he went to t
he nursing home and spent an hour there; after work, he spent another hour with
Gabby before the girls got home. On Fridays, he was there most of the day, and o
n weekends, he usually made it in for a few hours. That depended on the girls sch
edules, which was something Gabby would have insisted on. Sometimes on the weeke
nds they wanted to join him, but most times they didn t want to or didn t have the t
ime because of soccer games or parties or roller-skating. Somehow, without the c
hoice of whether Gabby would live or die hovering over him, their growing distan
ce didn t bother Travis as much as it once had. His daughters were doing what they
needed to do to heal and move on, just as he was. He d lived long enough to know
that everyone handled grief in different ways, and little by little, they all se
emed to accept their new lives. And then, one afternoon nine weeks after she d bee
n admitted to the nursing home, the pigeon appeared at Gabby s window.
At first, Travis didn t believe it. Truth be told, he wasn t even positive it was
the same bird. Who could tell? Gray and white and black with dark, beady eyes-an
d, okay, most of the time a pest-they all looked pretty much alike. And yet, sta
ring at it . . . he knew it was the same bird. It had to be. It paced back and f
orth, showing no fear of Travis when he approached the glass, and it had a coo t
hat sounded . . . familiar somehow. A million people could tell him he was crazy
, and part of him would know they were right, but still . . .
It was the same pigeon, no matter how crazy it sounded.
He watched it in wonder, amazed, and the following day, he brought some Wonder
Bread and scattered a few pieces on the sill. After that, he glanced at the win
dow regularly, waiting for the pigeon to reappear, but it never did. In the days
following its visit, he found himself depressed by its absence. Sometimes, in f
anciful moments, he liked to think that it had simply come to check on them, to
make sure Travis was still watching over Gabby. Either that, he told himself, or
it came to tell him not to give up hope; that in the end, his choice had been c
orrect.
On the back porch, remembering that moment, he marveled that he could stare ou
t at his happy daughters and experience so much of their joy himself. He barely
recognized this sense of well-being, the feeling that all was right in the world
. Had the appearance of the pigeon heralded the changes that took hold of their
lives? He supposed it was only human to wonder about such things, and Travis fig
ured that he d be telling the rest of the story as long as he lived.
What happened was this: It was midmorning, six days after the pigeon had reapp
eared, and Travis was working at the clinic. In one room was a sick cat; in anot
her, a Doberman puppy needing shots. In the third room, Travis was suturing a mu
tt-half Labrador, half golden retriever-that had received a gash while crawling
through barbed wire. He finished the final stitch, tied off the knot, and was ab
out to tell the owner how to keep the gash from getting infected when an assista
nt entered the room without knocking. Travis turned in surprise at the interrupt
ion.
It s Elliot Harris, she said. He needs to talk to you.
Can you take a message? Travis asked, glancing at the dog and its owner.
He said it can t wait. It s urgent.
Travis apologized to the client and told the assistant to finish up. He walked
to his office and closed the door. On the phone was a flashing light signaling
Harris on hold.
Thinking back, he wasn t sure what he d expected to hear. He did feel, however, so
mething ominous as he raised the receiver to his ear. It was the first-and the o
nly-time Elliot Harris had ever called him at the office. He steadied himself, t
hen pressed the button.
Travis Parker speaking, he said into the phone.
Dr. Parker, it s Elliot Harris, the director said. His voice was calm and unreadab
le. I think you should come down to the nursing home as quickly as you can.
In the short silence that followed, a million thoughts raced through Travis s mi
nd: that Gabby had stopped breathing, that she d taken a turn for the worse, that
somehow all hope had been lost. In that instant, Travis gripped the phone as if
trying to ward off whatever might come next.
Is Gabby okay? he finally asked, the words sounding choked.
There was another pause, probably only a second or two. A blink of an eye that
was years in the making, is the way he described it now, but the two words that
followed made him drop the phone.
He was eerily calm as he left his office. At least, that s what his assistants w
ould tell him later: that in looking at him, he gave no clues as to what had hap
pened. They said that they d watched as he drifted past the front desk, oblivious
to those who were watching him. Everyone, from the staff to the owners who d broug
ht their animals to the clinic, knew that Travis s wife was in the nursing home. M
adeline, who was eighteen and worked at the front desk, stared at him with wide
eyes as he approached her. By that point, nearly everyone in the office knew tha
t the nursing home had called. In small towns, news is nearly instantaneous.
Would you call my dad and tell him to come in? Travis asked. I have to go to the
nursing home.
Yes, of course, Madeline answered. She hesitated. Are you all right?
Do you think you could drive me? I don t think I should be behind the wheel right
now.
Sure, she said, looking frightened. Just let me make the call first, okay?
As she punched the number, Travis stood as if paralyzed. The waiting room was
silent; even the animals, it seemed, knew something had happened. He heard Madel
ine speaking to his dad as if from a great distance; in fact, he was only dimly
aware of where he was. It was only when Madeline hung up the phone and told him
that his father would be right in that Travis seemed to recognize his surroundin
gs. He saw the fear on Madeline s face. Maybe because she was young and didn t know
better, she asked the question that everyone seemed to be thinking.
What happened?
Travis saw empathy and concern etched on their faces. Most of them had known h
im for years; some had known him since he was a child. A few, mostly the staff,
knew Gabby well and, after the accident, they had gone through a period that alm
ost resembled mourning. It wasn t anyone s business and yet it was, because his root
s were here. Beaufort was their home, and looking around, he recognized everyone s
curiosity as something akin to familial love. Yet he didn t know what to say to t
hem. He d pictured this day a thousand times, but now, however, everything was bla
nk. He could hear himself breathing. If he concentrated hard enough, he believed
that he would even be able to feel his heart beating in his chest; but his thou
ghts seemed too far away to grasp, let alone put into words. He wasn t sure what t
o think. He wondered if he d heard Harris correctly or if it had all been a dream;
he wondered if he d somehow misunderstood. In his mind, he replayed the conversat
ion, hunting for hidden meanings, trying to grasp the reality behind the words,
but try as he might, he couldn t seem to focus long enough to even feel the emotio
n he was supposed to. Terror kept him from feeling anything at all. Later, he wo
uld describe the way he was feeling then as like being on a teeter-totter, with
ultimate happiness on one end and ultimate loss on the other, while he was stuck
in the middle, his legs on both sides, thinking that a single wrong move in eit
her direction would send him tumbling off.
In the clinic, he put his hand on the counter to steady himself. Madeline roun
ded the counter with her keys dangling. Travis looked around the waiting room, t
hen at Madeline, then at the floor. When he raised his eyes, all he could do was
mimic exactly what he d heard on the phone only moments before.
She s awake, he finally said.
Twelve minutes later, after thirty lane changes and three traffic lights that
were definitely yellow and perhaps even red, Madeline brought Travis to a halt a
t the entrance to the nursing home. He hadn t said a word since he d been in the car
, but he smiled his thanks as he pushed open the car door.
The drive had done nothing to clear his mind. He hoped beyond hope and was exc
ited beyond all measure; at the same time, he couldn t shake the thought that some
how he d misunderstood. Maybe she woke for an instant and was in a coma again; may
be someone had gotten the information wrong in the first place. Maybe Harris had
been referring to some obscure medical condition that improved brain function,
rather than the obvious. His head spun with alternating scenarios of hope and de
spair as he made his way toward the entrance.
Elliot Harris was waiting for him and seemed far more in control than Travis i
magined himself ever being again.
I ve already called the physician and the neurologist, and they re going to be here
in a few minutes, he said. Why don t you go up to her room?
She s okay, right?
Harris, a man Travis barely knew, put a hand on his shoulder, ushering him for
ward. Go see her, he said. She s been asking for you.
Someone held the door open for him-no matter how hard he tried, he couldn t even
remember whether it had been a male or a female-and Travis entered the facility
. A quick right led him to the stairs, and he bounded up them, becoming more wob
bly the higher he got. On the second floor, he pulled open the door and saw both
a nurse and an orderly waiting, as if expecting him. By their excited expressio
ns, he assumed they must have seen him come in and wanted to tell him what was h
appening, but he didn t stop, and they let him pass. As he took the next step, he
felt as if his legs were about to give way. He leaned against the wall to steady
himself for a moment, then took another step toward Gabby s room.
It was the second room on the left, and her door stood open. As he got closer,
he heard the murmur of people talking. At the door, he hesitated, wishing he d at
least brushed his hair but knowing it didn t matter. He stepped inside, and Gretc
hen s face lit up.
I was at the hospital next to the doctor when he got the page, and I just had t
o come see. . . .
Travis barely heard her. Instead, all he could register was the sight of Gabby
, his wife, propped up weakly on her hospital bed. She seemed disoriented, but h
er smile when she saw him told him everything he needed to know.
I know you two have a lot of catching up to do . . . , Gretchen went on in the b
ackground.
Gabby? Travis finally whispered.
Travis, she croaked. Her voice sounded different, scratchy and hoarse from disus
e, but somehow, it was Gabby s voice just the same. Travis moved slowly toward the
bed, his eyes never leaving hers, unaware that Gretchen was already backing out
, shutting the door behind her.
Gabby? he repeated in near disbelief. In his dream, or what he thought was a dre
am, he watched as she moved her hand from the bed to her stomach, as if that too
k all the strength she had.
He sat on the bed beside her.
Where were you? she asked, the words slurry but nonetheless full of love, unmist
akably full of life. Awake. I didn t know where you were.
I m here now, Travis said, and at that he broke down, his sobs coming out in heavi
ng bursts. He leaned toward Gabby, aching for her to hold him, and when he felt
her hand on his back, he began to cry even harder. He wasn t dreaming. Gabby was h
olding him; she knew who he was and how much she meant to him. It s real, was all
he could think, this time, it s real. . . .
With Travis unwilling to leave Gabby s side, his dad covered for him at the clin
ic for the next few days. Only recently had he returned to something resembling
a full-time schedule, and on weekends like this, with his daughters running and
laughing in the yard and Gabby in the kitchen, he sometimes caught himself grasp
ing for details of the past year. His memories of the days he spent in the hospi
tal had a blurry, hazy quality to them, as if he d been only slightly more conscio
us than Gabby.
Gabby hadn t emerged from her coma unscathed, of course. She had lost a great de
al of weight, her muscles had atrophied, and a numbness persisted on most of her
left side. It took days before she could stand upright without support. The the
rapy was maddeningly slow; even now, she spent a couple of hours daily with the
physical therapist, and in the beginning, she often grew frustrated that she cou
ld no longer do simple things she d once taken for granted. She hated her gaunt ap
pearance in the mirror and commented more than once that she looked as if she ha
d aged fifteen years. In moments like those, Travis always told her she was beau
tiful, and he d never been more sure of anything.
Christine and Lisa took a bit of time to adjust. On the afternoon that Gabby w
oke up, Travis asked Elliot Harris to call his mother so she could pick up the g
irls from school. The family was reunited an hour later, but when they stepped i
nto the room, neither Christine nor Lisa seemed to want to get close to their mo
ther. Instead, they clung to Travis and offered monosyllabic answers to whatever
Gabby asked. It took half an hour before Lisa finally crawled onto the bed alon
gside her mother. Christine didn t open up until the following day, and even then
she kept her feelings at bay, as if she were meeting Gabby for the first time. T
hat night, after Gabby had been transferred back to the hospital and Travis brou
ght the girls home, Christine asked whether Mommy was really back, or if she d go b
ack to sleep again. Though the physicians made it clear they were fairly certain
she wouldn t, they hadn t ruled it out completely, at least for the time being. Chri
stine s fears reflected his own, and whenever he found Gabby sleeping or simply re
sting after a grueling round of therapy, Travis s stomach would clench. His breath
ing would get shallow, and he d nudge her gently, growing increasingly panicked th
at she wouldn t open her eyes. And when she finally stirred, he couldn t mask his re
lief and gratitude. While Gabby accepted his anxieties in the beginning-she admi
tted the thought scared her as well-it had begun to drive her crazy. Last week,
with the moon high in the sky and crickets chirping, Travis began to stroke her
arm as she lay beside him. Her eyes opened and she focused on the clock, noting
it was a little after three in the morning. A moment later, she sat up in bed an
d glared at him.
You ve got to stop doing this! I need my sleep. Unbroken, regular sleep, like eve
ryone else in the world! I m exhausted, can t you understand that? I refuse to live
the rest of my life knowing that you re going to nudge me awake every hour!
That had been the extent of her comments; it couldn t even be classified as an a
rgument, since he didn t have time to respond before she d rolled over with her back
to him, muttering to herself-but it struck Travis as so . . . Gabby-like that h
e breathed a sigh of relief. If she no longer worried about slipping into a coma
again-and she swore she didn t-then he knew he shouldn t, either. Or, at the very l
east, he could let her sleep. If he was honest with himself, he wondered whether
the fear would ever disappear completely. Now, in the middle of the night, he s
imply listened to the way she breathed, and when he noticed differences in the p
attern, differences that hadn t occurred when she d been in a coma, he was finally a
ble to roll over and go back to sleep.
They were all adjusting, and he knew that would take time. Lots of it. They ha
d yet to talk about the fact that he d disregarded the living will, and he wondere
d whether they ever would. He had yet to tell Gabby the extent of the imaginary
conversations she d had with him while she was in the hospital, and she had little
to say about the coma itself. She didn t remember anything: no aromas, no sounds
from the television, nothing about his touch. It s like time just . . . vanished.
But that was fine. It was all as it should be. Behind him, he heard the screen
door creak open and he turned. In the distance, he could see Molly lying in the
tall grass off to the side of the house; Moby, old guy that he was, was sleepin
g in the corner. Travis smiled as Gabby spied her daughters, noting her content
expression. As Christine pushed Lisa on the tire swing, both of them giggling ma
dly, Gabby took a seat in the rocker beside Travis.
Lunch is ready, she said. But I think I ll let them play for a few more minutes. Th
ey re having such a good time.
They are. They wore me out earlier.
Do you think that maybe later, when Stephanie gets here, we can all head over t
o the aquarium? And maybe have some pizza afterward? I ve been dying for pizza.
He smiled, thinking he could stay in this moment forever. That sounds good. Oh
yeah, that reminds me. I forgot to tell you that your mom called when you were i
n the shower.
I ll call her back in a little while. And I ve got to call about the heat pump, too
. The girls room just wouldn t cool off last night.
I can probably fix it.
I don t think so. The last time you tried to fix it, we had to buy a whole new un
it. Remember?
I remember you didn t give me enough time.
Yeah, yeah, she teased. She winked at him. Do you want to eat out here or inside?
He pretended to debate the question, knowing it wasn t really important. Here or
there, they would all be together. He was with the woman and daughters he loved
, and who could ever need or want anything more than that? The sun shone bright,
flowers were blooming, and the day would pass with a careless ease that had bee
n impossible to imagine the winter before. It was just a normal day, a day like
any other. But most of all, it was a day in which everything was exactly the way
it should be.
This file was created with
BookDesigner program
[email protected]
2/12/2008